MORAL VIEWS OF COMMERCE, SOCIETY AND POLITICS, IN TWELVE DISCOURSES, BY ORVILLE DEWEY, ri rx LI Bli.\ . \ ruiYKkSTTv OF < AIJFORXIA. / NEW-YORK: DAVID FELT & CO. STATIONERS' HALL. 1838. n^ V ^v Entered according to an Act of Congress, in the year 1838, byOrville Dewey, in the Clerk's office of the District Court of the Southern District of New- York. PRINTED AT STATIONERS' HALL PRESS. CONTENTS Page DISCOURSE I. On the Moral Laws of .Trade, 9 DISCOURSE II. On the Moral Law of Contracts, 48 DISCOURSE III. On the Uses of Labor, and a Passion for a Fortune, . 74 DISCOURSE IV. On the Moral Limits of Accumulation, .... 99 DISCOURSE V. On the Natural and Artificial Relations of Society, . 117 DISCOURSE VI. On the Moral Evils to which American Society is ex- posed, . . . . . , . . . 145 DISCOURSE VII. On Associations, 170 DISCOURSE VIII. On Social Ambition, 190 DISCOURSE IX. On the Place which Education and Religion must have in the Improvement of Society, . . . .210 IV CONTENTS. DISCOURSE X. On War, . .235 DISCOURSE XI. On Political Morality, 257 DISCOURSE XII. The Blessing of Freedom, 280 1,1 iw tAlix rlM >mTV of PREFACE, The character of some of the following Discourses will, doubtless, be thought unusual for the pulpit. The subjects themselves, indeed, are out of the ordinary course of preaching. I might say in their defence, that such topics have been some- times admitted into occasional Sermons ; and that Commercial Morality, in particular, has been made the subject of, at least, one entire volume of Religious Discourses, which has not offend- ed the popular taste. But this defence, I must confess, does not satisfy me. In justice to my own convictions, I must be allow- ed to place the following discussions on a broader ground than that of exception. If I deserve blame, I cannot fairly escape on such a plea. For I am persuaded, not only that such discus- sions are entirely proper for the pulpit, but that it is the bounden duty of the pulpit to entertain them. If, indeed, I have violated the proper decorum of religious discourse, such an error is capable of no defence. But I must be allowed to say, that when I had determined that it was my duty as a preacher, to discuss certain subjects, I could not allow any formality or fastidiousness of the pulpit, to prevent me from doing so with as much thoroughness and detail, as were com- patible with the gravity of the place. Thus, with regard to the first discourse-^-on the Moral Law of Contracts knowing, as I did know, that the consciences of men around me, were deeply involved in the questions that arose, I could not hesitate about going into the necessary specifications, however unusual, in preaching; the serious business of such a discourse, would not allow me to stand on pulpit ceremony, as to terms and phrases and instances. I could not well be understood without them ; and as the object of speaking is to be understood, I knew of na s Vi PREFACE. sanctity of time or place, that was to contravene the laws of that very instrument, speech, which I was using. I am not ignorant, at the same time, in what manner any thing unusual in the subjects or style of religious discourses is likely to be received. I know that there will be some readers, as there have been hearers of these discourses, to say, that a part of them would be more suitable for the Lyceum and lec- ture-room. Nay, I will confess, that in delivering them, I have had certain feelings of reluctance to contend with, in my own mind ; so powerful are old prepossessions against new or singu- lar views of duty. Since I understand the feeling of objection, therefore, will the kind reader who may entertain the same feel- ing, permit me to reason the matter a little with him and with myself, in the remainder of this preface ? Let me ask, in the first place, if our ideas of propriety in th'u case, are not very much matters of convention and usage ? If we had always been accustomed to hear discussions in our churches, on such subjects as the Morals of Traffic, of Politics, and of our social well-being as a nation if the terms and phrases appro- priate to such subjects had found a place in the pulpit, should we ever have doubted their propriety ? It is observable, in- deed, that certain topics have forced their way into the pulpit, within the last quarter of a century, which, it is probable, sound- ed as questionably and strangely in ears accustomed only to the old scholastic preaching, as any grave moral topics can now. I allude to discussions on War and Peace, on Temperance, Abo- lition, and the various religious enterprises of the day. The question then is what is the proper range of the pulpit ? What is the appropriate business of preaching ? The answer is plain to address the public mind on its moral and religious duties and dangers. But what are its duties and dangers, and where are they to be found ? Are they not to be found wherev- er men are acting their part in life ? Are human responsi- bility and exposure limited to any one sphere of action to the church or to the domestic circle or to the range of the gross and sensual passions ? Are not men daily making shipwreck of their consciences in trade and politics ? And wheresoever con- science goes to work out its perilous problem, shall not the preacher follow it ? It is not very material, whether a man's integrity forsakes him at the polls in an election, or at the board of merchandise ; or at the house of rioting, or the gates whose PREFACE. Vll way leadeth to destruction. Outwardly it may be different, but inwardly it is the same. In either case, the fall of the victim is the most deplorable of all things on earth ; and most fit, there- fore, for the consideration of the pulpit. I must confess, I can- not understand, by what process of enlightened reasoning and conscience, the preacher can come to the conclusion, that there are wide regions of moral action and peril around him, into which he may not enter, because such unusual words as, Com- merce, Society, Politics, are written over the threshold. Nay more ; is not the greatest possible disservice done to the highest interests of mankind, by this limitation as to subjects, un- der which the pulpit has laid itself. The confined and techni- cal character which belongs to the common administration of religion, does more than any thing else, in my apprehension, to disarm it of its power. I am not insensible, when I say this, to the greatness of those obstacles in the human heart and in hu- man life, with which it has to contend. I am not, now, measu- ring the strength of those obstacles, but simply considering the force that is brought to bear upon them. That force is moral, spiritual force ; and the leading form of it, in the public estima- tion, is preaching. The pulpit is the authorised expositor to men, of their duties. Those duties, it will not be denied, press upon every action and instant of human life. But what now, is the consideration which the pulpit generally, gives to this wide and busy field of duty ? Are not whole spheres of human ac- tion left out of the account ? With the exception of some occa- sional and wholesale denunciations, are not business, politics, amusements and fashionable society, passed by entirely ? Are not men left to say, when engaged in those scenes " religion has nothing to do with us here ?" Do they not, naturally enough, feel that these engagements are, in a manner, set apart from all sense of duty ? Is it strange, then, that the public conscience is lax in these matters ? It seems to me, I must confess, rather a hard measure that the pulpit deals out to these departments of life. It never recognizes them as spheres of duty : it does nothing for the correction or culture of men's minds in them ; and yet, every now and then, it comes down upon their aberrations with cold, bitter and unsparing censure. Let me not be supposed to forget, that the pulpit has to deal with topics and questions of duty, that go down into the depths of the human heart with faith, and repentance, and love, and Vlll PREFACE* self-denial, and disinterestedness and that its principal busi^ ness is thus to make the fountain pure. But religion has an out- ward form, as well as an inward spirit. That form is the whole lawful action of life. And to cut off half of that action from all public and positive recognition what is it but to consign it over to irreligion, to unprincipled license, and worldly vanity ? There is time enough in the pulpit for all things. Nay, it wants variety. It is made dull by the restriction and reitera- tion of its topics. It would gain strength by a freer and fuller grasp of its proper objects. What it can do, I believe, yet re- mains to be seen. We complain of the corruptions of fashion and amusement, of business and politics. The calm, consider- ate, concentrated, universal attention of the pulpit, to these things, would, in one year, I believe, produce a decided and manifest effect. But the great evil, I am sensible, lies deeper too deep for any sufficient consideration, within the narrow limits of a preface. The pulpit not only fails in this matter, but it fails on firincifile x and on a principle almost universally adopted. The evil is, that sermons, pulpits, priests all the active agents that are laboring in the service of religion are, by the public judgment as well as by their own choice, severed from the great mass of humai\ actions and interests 'I-,.,. vft I- DISCOURSE I. ON THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS, I THESSALONIANS IV. 6. That no man go beyond and DEFRAUD HIS BROTHER IN ANY MATTER. I propose to invite your attention in a series of three or four Sabbath evening discourses, to the moral laws of trade, the moral end of business, and to the moral principles which are to govern the accumulation of property. The first of these subjects, is proposed for your consideration this evening ; and it is one, as I conceive, of the highest interest and importance. This country presents a spectacle of active, absorb- ing, and prosperous business, which strikes the eye of every stranger, as its leading characteristic. We are said to be, and we are a people, beyond all others, devoted to business and accumulation. This, though it is often brought against us as a reproach, is really an inevitable result of our political condition, I trust that it is but the first development, and that many bet- ter ones are to follow. It does, however, spring from our institutions ; and I hold, moreover, that it is hon- orable to them. If half of us were slaves, that half could have nothing to do with traffic. If half of us were in the condition of the peasantry of Europe, the 10 THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. business transactions of that half would be restricted within a narrow sphere, and would labor under a heavy pressure. But where liberty is given to each one to act freely for himself, and by all lawful means to better his condition, the consequence is inevitably what we see an universal and unprecedented activ- ity among all the classes of society, in all the depart- ments of human industry. The moral principles then, applicable to the transaction of business have strong claims upon our attention ; and seem to me, very pro- per subjects of discussion in our pulpits. There are moral questions too, as we very well know, which actually do interest all reflecting and con- scientious men who are engaged in trade. They are very frequently discussed in conversation ; and very different grounds are taken by the disputants. Some say that one principle is altogether right, and others, that another and totally different one is the only right principle. In such circumstances, it seems to me not only proper but requisite, for those whose office it is to speak to men of their duties, that they should take up the discussion of these as they would any other moral questions. I am obliged to confess that we are liable, scholastic and retired men as we are, to give some ground to men of business, for anticipating that our reasonings and conclusions will not be very prac- tical or satisfactory. I can only say, for myself, that I have, for some time, given patient and careful atten- tion to the moral principles of trade ; that I have often conversed with men of business that I might understand the practical bearings and difficulties of the subject ; that I have also read some of the books in which the morality of contracts is discussed ; THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. 11 and although a clergyman, I shall venture, with some confidence as well as modesty, to oner you my thoughts on the points in question. I say the points in question ; and I have intimated that there are points in debate, questions of conscience in business, which are brought into the most serious controversy. I have even known conscientious and sensible men, them- selves engaged in trade, to go to the length of assert- ing, not only that the principles of trade are immoral and unchristian, but that no man can acquire a pro- perty in this commerce without sacrificing a good con- science ; that no prosperous merchant can be a good Christian. I certainly think that such casuists are wrong ; but whether or not they are so, the principles which bring them to a conclusion so extraordinary, evidently demand investigation. In preparing to examine this opinion, and indeed to discuss the whole subject, it will not be improper to observe in the outset, that trade in some form, is the inevitable result of the human condition. Better, it has been said, on the supposition already stated bet- ter that commerce should perish than Christianity ; but let it be considered whether commerce can per- ish. Nothing can be more evident than that the earth was formed to be the theatre of trade. Not on- ly does the ocean facilitate commerce, but the diver- sity of soils, climes, and products, requires it. So long as one district of country produces cotton, and another corn ; so long as one man lives by an ore-bed which produces iron, and another, on pasture-lands which grow wool, there must be commerce. In addition to this, let it be considered that all human industry inevi- tably tends to what is called " the division of labor." 12 THE MORAL LAW OP CONTRACTS. The savage who roams through the wilderness, may possibly, in the lowest state of barbarism, procure with his own hand all that suffices for his miserable ac- commodation, the coat of skins that clothes, the food that sustains, and the hut that shelters him. But the moment that society departs from that state, there ne- cessarily arise the different occupations of shepherd, agriculturist, mechanic, and manufacturer ; the pro- ducts of whose industry are to be exchanged ; and this exchange is trade. If a single individual were to perforin all the operations necessary to produce a piece of cloth, and yet more a garment of that cloth, the process would be exceedingly slow and expensive. Human intelligence necessarily avails itself of the facility, the dexterity, and the advantage every way, which are to be obtained by a division of labor. The very progress of society is indicated by the gradual and growing development of this tendency. Besides, it has been justly observed by a celebrated writer on this subject,* that " there is a certain propen- sity in human nature to truck, barter, and exchange one thing for another. It is common to all men," he says, " and to be found in no other race of animals, which seem to know neither this nor any other spe- cies of contracts. Nobody," he observes, " ever saw a dog make a fair and deliberate exchange of one bone for another, with another dog. Nobody ever saw one animal by its gestures and natural cries signify to an- other, this is mine, that yours ; I am willing to give this for that." Trade, then, being a part of the inevitable lot of cultivated humanity, the question is, not about abolish- *Adam Smith. THE MORAL LAW OP CONTRACTS. 13 ing, but about the moral principles that are to regulate it. And the grand question which I propose now to examine is, the only one that presses upon the con- science, and therefore proper for discussion in the pul- pit ; and one, too, of daily recurrence the question, that is, about the moral law of contracts. The ques- tion, to state it more definitely, is, whether, in making contracts, it is right for one party to take any advan- tage, or to make any use, and if any, what, of his supe- rior sagacity, information, or power of any kind ? Let us first inquire, how we are to settle this ques- tion ? What is the process of mind by which we are to ascertain and establish the moral laws of trade ? Does the natural conscience declare them? Is there any instinctive prompting of conscience, that can properly decide each case as it arises in the course of business ? Is there any voice within, that says clearly and with authority, " thou shalt do thus, and so ?" I think not. The cases are not many, in any depart- ment of action, where conscience thus reveals itself. But in business they are peculiarly rare, because the questions there, are unusually complicated. You offer to sell to your neighbor an article of merchandise. You are entitled of course i. e. in ordinary circum- stances to some advance upon what it cost you. But what that is, depends on many circumstances. Con- science will hardly mark down the just price in your account-book. Conscience, indeed, commands us to do right ; but the question is, what is right ? This is to be decided by views far more various and compre- hensive, than the simple sense of right and wrong. The Scriptures, like conscience, are a general direc- tory. They do not lay down any specific moral laws 2 14 THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. of trade. They command us to be upright and hon- est ; but they leave us to consider what particular actions are required by those principles. They com- mand us to do unto others as we would have them do to us ; but still this is not specific. A man may un- reasonably wish that another should sell him a piece of goods at half its value. Does it follow that he him- self ought to sell on those terms ? The truth is, that the golden rule, like every other in Scripture, is a gen- eral maxim. It simply requires us to desire the wel- fare of others, as we would have them desire ours. But the specific actions answering to that rule, it leaves us to determine by a wise discretion. The dictates of that discretion, under the governance of the moral law, are the principles that we seek to discover. Neither, on this subject, can I accept without ques- tion the teachings of the common law ; because, I find, that its ablest expounders acknowledge that its deci- sions are sometimes at variance with strict moral prin- ciple. I do not think it follows from this, that the gen- eral principles of the common law, are wrong, or abet wrong. Nay, I conceive that they may approach as near to rectitude as is possible in the circumstances, and yet necessarily involve some practical injustice in their operation. This results, in fact, from their very utility, their very perfection, as a body of laws. For it is requisite to their utility, that they should be general, that they should be derived from precedents and formed into rules ; else, men will not know what to depend upon, nor how to govern themselves ; and there would neither be confidence, nor order, nor society. But general rules must sometimes bear hard upon indivi- duals ; the very law which secures justice in a thou- THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. 15 sand cases, may, and perhaps must, from the very na- ture of human affairs and relationships, do injustice in one. Indeed, the law of chancery, or of equity, has been devised on purpose to give relief. But oven chancery has its rules which sometimes press injuri- ously upon individual interests ; and no human laws can attain to a perfect and unerring administration of justice. For this perfect justice, however, we seek. We are asking what it is to do no wrong to our fel- low-man, whether the law permits it or not. We are asking how we shall stand acquitted, not merely at the bar of our country, but at the bar of conscience and of God. I must add, in fine, that questions about right and wrong in the contracts of trade, are not to be decided by any hasty impulses of feeling, or suggestions of a generous temper. I have often found men, in conver- sation on this subject, appealing to their feelings ; but however much I have respected those feelings, it has seemed to me, that they were not the proper tribunal. Nay, they have often appeared to me to mistake the point at issue. If a merchant has a large store of pro- visions in a time of scarcity, would it not be a very noble and praise- worthy thing, it is said, for him to dis- pose of his stock, without enhancing the price ? But the proper question is not, what is generous, but what is just. And besides, he cannot be generous, or what is the same thing in effect, he cannot establish a gen- erous principle in the distribution of his store. For if he sells in large quantities, selling, that is, at a low rate, it will avail nothing, because the subordinate dealers will raise the price. Or, if he undertakes to sell to each family what it wants ; any one of them may 16 THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. take the article to the next warehouse, and dispose of it at the enhanced price. On the contrary, there are circumstances, undoubtedly, in which a man may take undue advantage of a monopoly; but this will be a case for future consideration. For the present, it is sufficient to observe, what I think must be obvious, that the great question before us is to be decided, not by any enactments of law, nor any immediate dictate of conscience, or specific teaching of Scripture, or single impulse of good feeling, but by broad and large views of the whole subject. Conscience, and Scripture, and right feeling are to govern us ; but it is only under the guidance of sound reasoning. Let me beg your indulgence to one or two further preliminary observations. The questions to be dis- cussed are of great importance, and scarcely of less dif- ficulty. It is hardly possible to overrate the impor- tance of a high, and at the same time, just tone of com- mercial morality. I am addressing merchants and young men, who are to be the future merchants of this city and country. I am addressing them on the moral- ity of their daily lives, on the principles that are to form their character for time, and eternity ; and while I task myself to speak with the utmost care and de- liberation, I shall not be thought unreasonable, I trust, if I invite the patient attention of those who hear me, to share in the task. There is then, on this subject, a distinction to be made between principles and rules. Principles, the principles that is to say of truth, justice and benefi- cence, are clear and immutable ; the only difficulty is about the application of them i. e. about rules. Prin- ciples, I say, are to be set apart, at once and entirely. THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. 17 from all doubt and uncertainty. They hold their place on high, like unchanging lights in the heavens. The only question is, how, in obedience to their direction, we are faithfully and surely to work our traverse across the troubled ocean of business. Here, I say, is all the difficulty. Rules, I repeat, result from the application of principles to human conduct, and they must be affected by the circumstances to which they relate. Thus; it is an immutable principle in morals, that I should love my neighbor, my fellow-being, and desire to promote his happiness v This principle admits of no qualification ; it can suffer no abatement in any circumstances. But when I come to consider what I shall do in obedience to this principle ; what I shall do for the poor, the sick, or the distressed ; by what acts I shall show my kindness to my neighbor, or my inter- est in the welfare of the world, when, in other words, I come to consider the rules of my conduct, I am obliged at once to admit doubts and difficulties. The abstract principle cannot be my law, without any re- gard to circumstances, though some moral reformers would make it such. I must go on the right line of conduct, it is true, but where that line shall lead me, is to be determined by a fair consideration of the cases that come before me. If it is not, I shall contravene the very principle on which I am acting. If, for in- stance, I do nothing but give, give to the poor, I shall be doing them an injury, not a kindness. The great law of benevolence, in fact, as truly requires discre- tion as it enforces action. This distinction fully applies to the subject we are about to examine. Rectitude, justice, benevolence, truth-telling, are immutable laws of trade, as they 2* 18 THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. are of all human conduct. There is no certain extent to which they go ; they apply without limit to every department and every transaction in business ; they are never to be contravened. But in laying down practical rules for traffic, we immediately meet with difficulties, and are obliged to leave a great deal to the honest judgment of the trader. He must do right, in- deed ; that is the great law ; but what is right ? Let us now more nearly approach this question, having nar- rowed it down to a question about rules, and more closely apply ourselves to the difficulties involved in it. And here, I must ask you to consider as a further and final preliminary topic, the language of the legal wri- ters on this subject. It is common with those writers to make a distinction between moral and legal justice ; or, in other words, between the demands of conscience and the decisions of their courts. Conscience, for in- stance, demands that a certain contract shall be annulled, because there was some concealment or de- ception, but the courts will not annul it, unless the injury be very great. In short, it is a matter of de- grees. Up to a certain extent, the law will, in fact, protect a man in doing what is wrong, in doing that which violates his conscience ; beyond a certain ex- tent, it will not protect him. This distinction is founded on the policy of the law, and the policy of trade. " In law," says Pothier, " a party will not be permitted to complain of slight offences, which he, with whom a con- tract is made, has committed against good faith ; other- wise there would be too many contracts to be rescind- ed ; which would open the way for too much litigation, and would derange commerce."* And again, "the * Traits des Obligations, Part. I. ch. t Sec. 1. Art. 3. X THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. 19 interests of commerce will not easily permit parties to escape from bargains which they have concluded ; they must lay the blame to their not having been better informed concerning the defects of the article sold."* And again he says, "this rule is wisely established for the security and freedom of commerce, which demand that no one should easily be off from his bargains ; otherwise men would not dare to make contracts, for fear that he with whom they had bargained, should imagine that he was injured, and upon that ground (of mere imagination or pretence) should commence an action." Hence, Pothier says, that the wrong of which the courts will take cognizance, must be an enormous wrong. f Now there is, doubtless, a certain expediency here ; a certain policy of trade, a certain policy of the law. It is expedient that a fair field be opened in business for ingenuity, sagacity and attention ; and that igno- rance, indolence and neglect, should meet with loss. " The common law," says Chancellor Kent, " affords to every one, reasonable protection against fraud in dealing ; but it does not go the romantic length of giv- ing indemnity against the consequences of indolence and folly, or a careless indifference to the ordinary and accessible means of information." J What is the nature, and what is the amount of this concession to expediency ? Let us carefully consider this question, for much depends upon it. Legal expediency, then, is not to be so construed as to warrant the supposition, that it lends a sanction to * Trait 6 du Contrat de vente, Part. II. ch. 2. Art 2. t Traite de:; Obligations, Part. I. ch. 1. Sec. 1. Art. 3. 4. Commentaries. 20 THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. what is wrong. It may, from necessity, permit or pro- tect fraud, but does not abet it. A man is not to con- sider himself an honest man, simply because the law gives him deliverance. For the law cannot take cog- nizance of the secret intentions, nor of slight deviations from truth. If every man who says he has got a bad bargain, and who thinks he has been cheated, could be iieard in court, our tribunals would be overwhelmed with business. No human tribunal can descend to the minutiae of injustice. But the law, I repeat, does not sanction what it does not undertake to prevent, any more than the infinite providence sanctions those abuses which arise from its great law of freedom. This being the nature of the concession to expedi- ency no principle being compromised we may say, that the extent of the concession must be considerable. It is certainly expedient that every man be put upon his own discretion, sagacity and attention, for success. In business, as in every thing else, a premium is set upon these qualities by the hand of providence. It is expe- dient, in other words, that every man should take care of himself. Others are not to step forward at every turn to rescue him from the consequences of his indolence or inattention. The seller is not required to give his opinion to the buyer. If he knows of any defect in his merchandise, not apparent to the buyer, he is bound to state it ; but he is not required to give his opinion. The buyer has no business to ask it of him ; he is to form an opinion for himself. If he is relieved from doing this, he will always remain in a sort of mercan- tile childhood. Nor do I know that there is any thing in Scripture, or in the laws of human brotherhood, that forbids this THE MORAL LAW OP CONTRACTS. 21 honest, not fraudulent, but honest competition between men's exertions, faculties and wits. We are indeed to do to others as we would have them do to us ; but we ought not to wish them to do any thing to us, which is inconsistent with the general welfare of the commu- nity, with the lawful and necessary stimulants to action. We may have unreasonable desires : we would, perhaps, that our rich neighbor should present us with half of his fortune ; but unreasonable desires are not the measure of our duties. Not whatever we wish, but what we lawfully wish from others, should we do to them. And lawfully, we can no more wish that they should give to our indolence and negligence, the benefit of their sagacity and alertness in making a contract, than that they would give to our poverty the half of that wealth, which their superior industry or talent had earned for them. Thus, too, when it is said that we ought to treat all men as brethren $ it is true, indeed, so far as that relation is expressive of the general relationships of society. But while there should be a brotherly community of feeling, there can- not be a brotherly identity of interests between the members of society ; and, therefore, they are not bound to deal with one another as if they belonged to a com- munity of Shakers, or of New Harmony men. We are not to break down the principle of individuality, of individual interests, of individual aims ; w r hile at the same time, w T e are to hold it in subjection to the laws of sacred honesty, and of a wise philanthropy. Besides, it is not only expedient and right, but it is inevitable, that individual power and talent should come into play in business. A man's sagacity, it is obvious, he must use that is to say, his mind he must 22 THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. use for he has nothing else to go by. He may use it unjustly, to the heinous injury of his weaker neighbor ; but still he must use it. So also with regard to the power acquired by a large property, or by a mono- poly, it is inevitable that it should be used. To some extent, the possessor cannot help using it. Wealth has credit ; and monopoly, usually implying scarcity, carries an enhanced price with it ; and such results are unavoidable. Finally, superior actual knowledge, may, and must be used, to some extent. In every de- partment of business, superior knowledge is gained by attention, and it may and must be acted upon ; albeit to the hurt or injury of those who know less, or have devoted less time and thought to the subject. A man has made an improvement in some machinery or man- ufacture, and he is entitled to some reward for the attention he has given to it ; the government will give him a patent. A man has been to India or to South America, to acquaint himself with a certain branch of business, and he comes home and acts upon his know- ledge, and he has a perfect right to do so. He is not bound to communicate his knowledge to his brother merchants who are engaged in the same trade; and, perhaps, his knowledge so much depends upon actual observation and experience, that he cannot communi- cate it. In like manner, a trader may obtain a supe- rior knowledge of business and of the facts on which it depends, by a close observation of things immediately around him, and he must act upon it ; he cannot em- ploy himself in going about to see whether other men have got the same enlarged views. Nor have other men any right to complain of this. The unskilful painter or sculptor, the ignorant lawyer or physician THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. 23 might as well complain, that their more distinguished brethren were injuring their business, and taking all the prizes out of their hands. I have thus attempted to set forth the claims of in- dividual enterprise, as having a useful, a beneficent tendency. These claims, I have all along implied, are subject to certain limitations. And these limitations are set by the laws of honesty and philanthropy. That is to say, a man may pursue his own interest ; he may use his endeavor, sagacity, ability ; but, in the first place, he shall not pursue any traffic or make any contract to the injury of his neighbor ; unless that in- jury is one that inevitably results from a general and good principle that is to say, from the healthful ac- tion of business ; and, in the next place, he shall not pursue his own ends to the extent of committing any fraud. This last limitation is the one of the most palpable importance, and demands that we should dwell upon it a moment. What then is a fraud in contracts i In order to answer the question, let us ask what is a contract ? A contract is a mutual engagement, to ex- change certain goods for other goods, or certain goods for money, and the essence of the engagement lies in the supposed equivalency of the things that are ex- changed. This results from the very nature of the case and of the human mind. For it is not the part of a rational being to give more for less. If you bargain away any thing to your neighbour, you, of course, seek from him what to you is equivalent. But how are you to judge of this equivalency; of the value, that is to say, of the article offered to you ? There are two grounds on which you 24 THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. may judge. You may know the article as well as the seller, you may know as much about it ; every way, as he does. This is ordinarily the case between trader and trader. But between the merchant and the rest of the world, this is usually not the case. And here the ground on which you proceed is, that of confi- dence in the good faith of the seller. You could make up no satisfactory opinion on the value of the article offered to you, if you did believe that it is what it purports to be, what it appears to be, what the price indicates it to be. If, then, there is any secret defect in the article not apparent to you, or if there is any circumstance unknown to you, materially affecting its value, or if the price set upon it is any other than the market price, there is fraud. Wherever the con- tracting parties stand in totally different relations to the matter in hand, the one knowing something some secret, which the other does not and can- not know, there is fraud. The contract is morally vitiated. The obvious conditions of a contract are not complied with. It is well known by one of the par- ties that the grand condition that of equivalency does not exist in the case. Let us now look back, for a moment, upon the ground which we have passed over in this preliminary discussion. I have, in the first place, attempted to show that no single suggestion or dictate of con- science, or scripture, or of generous feeling, or of the law, is sufficient to solve the moral questions that arise in trade. In the next place, I have said that there is a distinction to be made between principles and rules ; the principles of moral conduct being clear and certain ; the rules only, the specific actions under THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. 25 Xhese principles, that is to say being liable to doubt. I thus wished to set one department of this subject above all question. In the third place, I applied my- self to the consideration of rules. And here I attempt- ed to show that while, on the one hand, it is expedi- ent that ample scope be given to human ingenuity, sagacity and alertness in business, yet, on the other hand, that they are never to transgress the bounds of philanthropy, honesty and justice. Let us now proceed to examine some of the cases to which these general reasonings apply. I. The first is the ordinary case of buying and selling, i. e. under ordinary circumstances. And here, it is expedient and necessary, that men in their dealings with one another should be put to the use of their senses and faculties. There is a discre tion and there is a duty proper, respectively, to the seller and to the buyer. Each of them has his par to act, his business to attend to, and neither of then, is bound to assume the duty of the other. In ord- nary cases there is no difficulty with this maxim, n temptation to dishonesty, no possibility of deception. The article is open to inspection ; its qualities ai as obvious to the buyer as to the seller. The buyer i- supposed to know his own business, his own occa sions ; the buyer is fairly supposed best to know wha the article is worth to him, not the seller ; and it is fc i him to decide, whether he will purchase, and what h will give. The seller cannot be expected to enter int the circumstances of the buyer, and to ascertain b\ inquiry what he intends to do with the article he pu chases; whether he can turn it to good account ; or wh ther he could not buy more advantageously somewhe. 3 26 THE MORAL LAW OP CONTRACTS. else ; all this belongs to the province of the buyer ; it is his business to settle all these questions. And he is not only best able to decide them, but he is as competent to judge of the quality of the goods which are offered him, as the seller, for they are alike open to the in- spection of both. This free action, this competition, we have already said, is to be restrained in trade as in every thing else, by perfect fairness and honesty. At that point in our preliminary discussion, the theoretical question about the nature of a contract presented itself; in our present inquiry, the natural and practical question is about price. What is the just price of an article? A man has something to sell ; he wishes to deal honest- ly ; the question then is, what shall he ask for it ? If he can settle this question, all is plain. How shall he settle it 1 What is it that determines a price to be just ? Evidently, not any abstract consideration of value. There can be no such thing as abstract value. The worth of a thing depends on the want of it. Original- ly, it is true ; i. e. in the first rude state of society, men, in exchanging the products of their labor, would naturally estimate the value of each article by the la- bour required to produce it. But even this estimate, though approaching nearest to it, would not present us with an abstract and absolute value ; and it would soon be disturbed by circumstances, effectually and beyond recovery. Labor would not be an accurate measure of value, because one man's labor, through its energy and ingenuity, would be worth far more than another man's. That primitive rule, too, in- accurate as it is, would soon, I repeat, be disturbed by circumstances. For, suppose that one man had THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. 27 manufactured axes and another, shoes ; circumstances would inevitably arise that would give one or ano- ther of these articles, a factitious value. In the winter season when protection was needed for the person, and in the summer which was favorable to the felling of timber, the value of those articles must be con- stantly fluctuating ; it would be factitious ; it could not be determined by the amount of labor. And as we depart farther from those primitive exchanges, we find circumstances, numerous, complicated and very arti- ficial, which affect value. The wants, fancies and fashions of society ; the state of crops and markets, and of trade all over the world ; the variations of the seasons ; the success or failure of fisheries ; improve- ments in machinery ; discoveries in art ; and the regu- lations of governments all these things and many more, conspire alternately to fix and disturb from day to day, that ever fluctuating thing called price. It is not any one man's judgment or conscience that can ascertain the value of any thing, but millions of indivi- dual judgments go to make up the decision. It is in vain to say that such and such things are worth little or nothing ; that they are unnecessary or useless, or that they confer no advantage proportionate to their cost that is not the question. What will they fetch'? is the question. You may, in a fit of generosity, or a scruple of conscience, sell them for less ; but the mo- ment they are out of your hands, they will rise to the level of the market ; you have lost the difference, and gained nothing for your generous principle. In fine, the value of a thing is the market price of it. This is the only intelligible idea of value ; and the only reasonable adjustment of price. It is certainly most 28 THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS, 'ikely to be reasonable ; for a multitude of judgments have been employed upon it, and have settled it. It is the legislative voice of the whole world ; and it would be as unjust and inexpedient as it is impossible, to resist it. The way of honesty, then, in the ordinary course of traffic, seems to be very clear. The terms on which we are to buy and sell, are established for us by a very obvious rule. In a general view, we may say, that conscience has nothing to do with affixing a price. That is determined by a thousand circumstances and a million voices. The trader must buy at the market price, and he must sell accordingly. He does not de- termine the price, but the suffrage of a whole city or of twenty cities, determines it. All that conscience has to do with price therefore is, not to go beyond the usage of the market. And for the rest, the rule is, to make no false representation, and to conceal no latent defect. In this view, the 'moral course in almost the entire business of trade, seems to be exceedingly plain ; and certainly it is most grateful to reflect that it is so. He that runs may read. No man needs to carry with him, in regard to most of the transactions of business, a disturbed or a doubtful conscience. But still cases will arise for a nicer casuistry. The market price is indeed the rule ; but there is monopoly that makes a market price, and there is superior in- formation that takes undue advantage of it. These are the cases that remain to be examined. II. The next case, then, to be considered in the morals of business, is monopoly. This may arise in t *vo ways ; intentionally, from combination on the part of several traders, or a plan on the part of one ; and THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACT8. 29 unintentionally, where it falls out in the natural and unforeed course of trade. It is from confounding these two cases together, perhaps, that a peculiar pre- judice is felt in the community against monopoly. That a man should set himself by dexterous manage- ment to get into his possession all the corn in market, in order to extort an enormous price for it, is felt to be oppressive and wrong. But there is often a mono- poly, to a greater or less degree, resulting from simple scarcity ; and in this case, that enhancement of price which is so odious, is perfectly inevitable. Nay, it may be even beneficial. For high prices lessen con- sumption, and may prevent famine. But at any rate, high prices in a time of scarcity are inevitable. Even if all the corn, or all the coal were in the hands of one man ; and he should sell the half of his stock to the wholesale dealers at a moderate rate, and hold the re- mainder at the same rate to keep the price down, still, I say, the moment the article left his hands, the law of scarcity would prevail and raise the price. Mono- poly, therefore, compels, and of course, justifies an enhanced price. The same principle which applies to every other commodity, applies to that commodity called money. And it is only from the habit of consid- ering money not as a commodity, but as a possession of some peculiar and magical value, that any prejudice can exist against what is called usurious interest; saving and excepting when that interest goes beyond all bounds of reason and humanity. The practice of usury has acquired a bad name from former and still occasional abuses of it. But the principle must still be a just one, that money, in common with every thing else, is worth what it will fetch. 3* 30 THE MORAL LAW OP CONTRACTS. This, I know, is denied. It is denied, especially, that money is, or is to be regarded, like other commo- dities in trade. It is said that money is the creature of the government ; that the mint, when stamping it with the government impress, stamps it with a pe- culiar character, and separates it entirely from the general condition of a commodity. It is said, too, that the common representative of money that the bank- note that credit, in other words is exposed to such expansion and contraction, and management and con- spiracy, that it is peculiarly liable to be used for the injury of the necessitous and unwary. Let us separate this last allegation from our discus- sion for a moment, and consider the question alone, as it affects the use of money in the form of bullion. And I know of no better way of considering ques- tions of this sort, than to resolve them into their sim- ple forms, by going back to the origin of society, or taking for example, a small and isolated community. At least, we come to the theory of the questions by this means, and can then consider what modifica- tions are required by more artificial and complicated interests. Suppose then a community of an hundred families, cut off from the rest of the world, engaged in the va- rious callings of life, accustomed to barter, but not ac- customed to the use of money. Suppose, now, that a gold-mine were discovered. The metal is found to be very valuable for various purposes ; and, like every thing else, it takes its value in the market ; an ounce of it is exchanged for so many bushels of corn or yards of cloth. But the permanent and universal value of this metal, and its being so portable and hide- THE MORAL LAW OP CONTRACTS. 31 structible, would, ere long, very naturally bring it into use as a circulating medium ; the farmer would know that if he sold corn for it, he could buy cloth with it in another part of the district, and would be glad thus to be saved the trouble and expense of transporting the produce of his farm to the distant manufactory. In this exchange, the lumps of gold of course would be weighed, and it would be natural to stamp the weight upon each lump. But another step would fol- low from all this. As there would be the trouble of constantly weighing this circulating medium, and the danger of mistake and deception, the community would appoint a committee, or depute its government, if it had one, to do this very thing ; and the metal would be cast into various quantities, bearing distinct denom- inations, to answer more fully the purposes of a con- venient circulating medium. Here, then, we have a mint, and here we have money. Nobody will deny that it was a commodity when each man dug it from the earth, and exchanged it at his pleasure. But the action of the government confers no peculiar charac- ter on it. The government simply weighs the metal, and affixes, as it were, a label to it ; i. e., stamps it as coin, to tell what it is worth. It does not create this value, but simply indicates it. I am sensible that many questions may still be ask- ed, but I have not space here, if I had ability, to enter into them ; and besides, if this is just theory of the value of the specie currency, it may itself suggest the necessary answers. But the great practical difficulties arise from the use of a paper currency. If the paper were strictly the representative of gold and silver if the issue of bank-notes did not exceed the specie actu- 32 THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. ally in vault, and thus were used only for convenience, the same principles would apply as before. All other paper does not represent money but credit ; i. e., it represents the presumed ability of a man to pay what he promises ; not his known and ascertained property. And the question is, may credit be bought and sold in the market like any commodity ? Let us again attempt to simplify the question. You want money, let us suppose, and you go to a money- lender, and ask for it. He says, " I have not the mon- ey, but I shall have it a month hence, and I will give my note, payable at that time." This may answer the purpose with your creditor, and the question now is, what interest shall you pay? Shall credit take its place in the market like money, or like a commodity ? Shall we say that the government has no business to interfere in this matter, with its usury laws, obliging a man to sell his paper for seven per cent. ? Shall we say that all this ought to be left to regulate itself, and that every man shall be left free to act according to his pleasure? I certainly feel some hesitation, from deference for the opinions of some able men who are more studious in these matters than I am, about answering this ques- tion in the affirmative. There are relations and bear- ings of that immense and complicated subject, the monetary system, which I may not understand, and usury, perhaps, is connected with that system in ways that are beyond my comprehension. But looking at the question now, in the light of simple justice, sepa- rating all unlawful combination and conspiracy from the case, and all deception and dishonesty I cannot see why a man has not a right to sell his credit for THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. U3 what another is willing to give for it. If a lawyer has so elevated himself above his brethren, that his opinion is worth not twenty but five hundred per cent more than theirs, he takes that advance for his counsel. Why then, shall not a merchant, who by the same la- borious means, has acquired a fortune and a high commercial reputation, be allowed a similar advan- tage? We say, why should he not dispose of his credit, or in other words, pledge his property at such prices as it will naturally bear ? But the truth is, that he can- not prevent this result, let him do what he will. He may sell his paper at one half per cent a month, but the moment it is out of his hands, it will rise to two or three per cent, if that be its real value. I say nothing now about obedience to the usury laws ; I do not touch the point of conscience in that respect ; but I believe that the laws themselves are both impolitic and unjust; unjust, because they conflict with the real value of things ; and impolitic, because they never were, and never can be executed, and in fact, because they only increase the rates of interest by increasing the risk. But is there, then, no limit it may be said, to the advantage which one man may take of the necessities of another? To ask this question in regard to the lender of money, is but the same thing as to ask it in regard to the man, in every other relationship of life. The duties of humanity, of philanthropy, of natural affection can never be abrogated by any circum- stances, and the only question is, what line of conduct in the case before us, is conformable to those duties. That question cannot, I think, be brought within the 34 THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. compass of any assignable rules ; and must be left for every man, seriously to consider for himself. He is put upon his conscience in this respect, as he is in every other case in life. III. But the hardest case to determine, is that on which the question is raised, about the use of superior information. And perhaps this question cannot be bet- ter stated than in the celebrated case put by Cicero.* A corn merchant of Alexandria, he says, arrived at Rhodes in a time of great scarcity, with a cargo of grain, and with knowledge that a number of other vessels laden with corn, had already sailed from Alex- andria for Rhodes, and which he had passed on the passage was he bound in conscience to inform the buyers of that fact? Cicero decides that he was. Several modern writers on law dissent from his opinion as Grotius, PufTendorf, and Pothier himself, though with very careful qualifications, f It appears to me, that the answer to Cicero's ques- tion, must depend on the views which are taken of a contract. If a contract is a mere arbitrary conven- tion, if business is a game, a mere contest of men's wits, if every man has a right to make the best bar- gain he can, if society really has power to ordain that such shall be the laws of trade, then the decision will be one way. But if a contract implies in its very nature the obligation of fair dealing and truth-telling, then the decision will be the other way. The suppo- sition is, that the Alexandrine trader concealed a cer- tain fact, for the sake of asking a price which he knew * De Officiis, Lib. 3. Sec. 12-17. f Trait6 du Contrat de vente, Part. II, ch, 2. Art 3. THE MORAL LAW OP CONTRACTS. 35 would not have been given, had that fact been public Now what is implied in asking a price ? What does a man say, when he sets a certain price on his mer- chandise ? Does he, or does he not say, that the price he asks is, in his opinion, the fair value of the article ? I think he does. If you did not so understand him, you would not trade with him. If you observed a lurking sneer on his lip, such as there must be in his heart, when he knows that he is taking you in, you would have nothing to do with him. The very trans- action, called a contract, implies that degree of good faith. If this be true, if it is universally understood that he who asks a price, professes in that very act to ask a just and fair price, and if, moreover, he has a let- ter in his pocket assuring and satisfying him that it is not the just price ; then he is guilty of falsehood. If the Alexandrine trader had asked a price, graduated exactly by his opinion of the probability that other ves- sels would soon arrive, and of the amount of the sup- ply they would " bring, his conduct would have been fair and honest. But if he had concealed facts within his knowledge, for the sake of asking an enormous price, or any price beyond what he knew to be the fair value, he would be guilty of falsehood and dis- honesty. And the reason is, I repeat, that the very basis of a contract is mutual advantage ; that its very essence lies in a supposed equivalency ; that he who sets a price is understood to say as much as this, " I think the article is worth it." And if you allow a man to swerve from this truth and good faith at all, where will you stop 1 Suppose that the people of Rhodes had been suffering the horrors of famine, and the Alexandrine merchant had taken advantage of their 36 THE MORAL LAW OP CONTRACTS. situation to exact from them all their disposable proper- ty as the price of life, and had borne off that mass of treasure, all the while knowing that bountiful supplies were at hand what should we have said ? We should have said that his perfidy was equal to his cruelty ^ that he was both a pirate and a villain. But if a man may be guilty of falsehood in one degree, what prin- ciple is to prevent his being guilty of it in another ? I know what may be said on the other hand. The mas- ter of the Alexandrine ship, it may be said, had outstrip- ped the others, by superior sailing ; and this superiority, in the management of his ship, may have been the fruit of a whole life of industry and ingenuity. He had also been on the alert, it may be supposed ; had watched the course of the markets while others slept, and had been ready with his supply to meet the ex- igency which all others even the Rhodians them- selves, had been too dull to foresee. Is he not entitled to some premium for all this? Nay, but for the pros- pect held out of such a reward, the Rhodians might have starved. And yet if he gives the information in question, he loses the premium. No, the merchants of Rhodes say, " we will wait till to-morrow." But again ; to-morrow comes ; the vessels arrive ; the mar- ket is glutted ; and the Alexandrine trader loses mon- ey on his voyage. Will the merchants of Rhodes make it up to him, on account of his generosity in giving them the information ? Not at all. " We buy at the market price," they say ; " we cannot afford any more ; if we give more we are losers ;" and thus the Alexandrine by neglecting his oWn interests, and tak- ing care of other people, loses not only his voyage, but his whole fortune perhaps, and becomes a bankrupt ; THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. 37 and by becoming a bankrupt, he injures those he is most bound to serve his confiding friends, and beggared family. All this is a very good reason, to be sure, why the Alexandrine trader should be rewarded for his exertions, but it is not any good reason, nor can there ever be any good reason, why a man should tell a falsehood, why he should make a false impression, why he should deceive his neighbor. Do we then propose to reduce the wise and the ig- norant, the sagacious and the stupid, the attentive and the negligent, the active and the indolent, to the same level ? Must the intelligent and the enterprising merchant raise up his dull and careless neighbor, to his own point of view, before he may deal with him ? Certainly not. Let a wide field be opened, only pro- vided that the boundaries be truth and honesty. Let the widest field for activity and freedom of action be spread, which these boundaries can enclose. Indeed, a man must act in trade upon some opinion. That opinion must be founded on some knowledge. And that knowledge he may properly seek. Nay, and he may use it, to any extent, not implying deception or dishonesty. Nor are the cases frequent, in which com- mercial operations possess any such definite or extra- ordinary character, as admits of deception. It does not often happen that any great advantage is, or can be taken of complete and unsuspecting ignorance. Men are wary. They will not make questionable sales, when a packet ship from abroad is in the of- fing. They are set to guard their own interests, and they do guard them. They must assume some re- sponsibilities in this way ; they must take some risks. They are liable to err in opinion, and they must take 4 38 THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. Such chance as human imperfection ordains for them. Business, like every other scene of human life, is a theatre for imperfection, for error, for effort, for opin- ion, and for their results. I do not see how it can pos- sibly be otherwise, and therefore, I consider it as ap- pointed to be so. Undue advantage may be taken of this state of things by the selfish, grasping, and uncon- scientious ; right principles may be wrested to the ac- complishment of wrong ends ; a system of commer- cial morality may be good for the community, and yet may be abused by individuals : all this is true ; and yet the doctrine which applies every where else must apply here, that abuse fairly argues nothing against use. Let us see how the case would stand if it were oth- erwise : let us see what the assumption on the part of the trading community, that no man should ever act in any way on superior information, would amount to. " We may sleep," they would say, " we need not take any pains to inform ourselves of the state of the mar- kets ; we need not take a step from our own door. If our neighbor comes to trade with us, he must first inform us of every thing affecting the price of our goods. He makes himself very busy ; and he shall have his labor for his pains ; for the rule now is, that indolence is to fare as well as activity, and vigilance is to have no advantage over supineness and sloth." Sup- pose, then, that the vigilant and active man is up be- times, and goes down upon the wharf, or to the news- room, and becomes apprized of facts that affect the price of his goods ; he must not go about selling, till he has stepped into the shop of his indolent neighbor, and perhaps, of half a dozen such, to inform them of the state of things ; for, although he does not directly trade THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. 39 with them, yet, by underselling or selling for more, in consequence of superior information, he injures them just as much as if he did : i. e., he takes profits out of the hands of the slothful, by acting on his superior know- ledge. But now enlarge the sphere of the compari- son. There is no real difference in the principle be- tween a man's going down to the wharf, and his going to Europe, for information. And if, by superior activ- ity, by building better ships and better manning them, he is accustomed to get earlier advices of the state of foreign markets, I see not, but as a general principle, a principle advantageous to commerce, and encour- aging to human industry and ingenuity, he must be allowed to avail himself of those advices. The law of general expediency must be a law for the conscience. It is expedient that there should be commerce or bar- ter ; nay, it is inevitable. It is expedient that indus- try and attention should be rewarded, and that negli- gence and sloth should suffer loss. It is expedient, therefore, that all that sagacity, power and information, which are the result of superior talent, energy and ingenuity, should yield certain advantages to their pos- sessor. These advantages he may push beyond the bounds of reason and justice ; but we must not, on that account, be deterred from maintaining a principle which is right ; a principle which is expedient and ne- cessary for the whole community. And is not the same principle, in fact, adopted in every department of human pursuit ? Two men en- gage in a certain branch of manufactures. The one, by his attention and ingenuity makes discoveries in his art, and thus gains advantages over his indolent or dull neighbor. Is he obliged to impart to him his 40 THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. superior information ? Two young men in the profes- sion of the law, are distinguished, the one for hard study, the other for idleness. They are engaged in the same cause ; and the one perceives that the other is making a false point in the case. Is he obliged to go ever to his brother's office, and explain to him his error ; or is it not proper, rather, that both himself and his client should suffer for that error, when the cause comes to be argued in open court ? In fine, I hold that a distinction is to be made be- tween general information and definite knowledge. If a man knows that an article is worth more than he buys it for, or less than he sells it for, he does not act with truth and integrity. It is just as if he knew the article were more or less in quantity than he alleges it to be. But if he acts on general information, open alike to all, if he acts on mere opinion, in which he may be mistaken, if he has no certain knowledge of the merchandise in question, but only a judgment, he is entitled to the full benefit of that judgment ; while he is liable, at the same time, to the full injury of it, if it be mistaken. But in regard to absolute certainty, how, I would ask, are we to distinguish between knowledge in re- gard to the real value of an article, from knowledge in regard to the real quality of an article ? If I sell mer- chandise in which there is some secret defect, and do not expose that defect, I am held to be a dishonest man. But what matters it to my conscience, whether the secret defect lies in the article, or in the price ? It comes to the same thing with my fellow-dealer. If I were to sell moth-eaten cloths at four dollars per yard more than they were worth the defect known ^ THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. 41 to me and not to my neighbor all the world would pronounce me a knave. But there is another sort of moth, a secret in my own keeping, which may have as effectually eaten out four dollars from every yard of that cloth, as if it had literally cut the thread of the fabric. What difference now can it make to my neighbor, whether advantage is taken of his ignorance in one way or another, in regard to the quality or the price ? The only material point is the value, and that is equally affected in either case. This is the only conclusion to which I find myself able, on much reflec- tion, to arrive. Knowledge of prices is as material to the value of merchandise, as knowledge of its quali- ties. This knowledge, therefore, as it appears to me, should be common to all contracting parties. I can- not think that a trader is to be like a fisher, disguising his hook with bait ; or like a slight-of-hand man, cheat- ing men out of their senses and money with a face of gravity^ or like an Indian, shooting from behind a bush, himself in no danger. Trade, traffic, contracts, bargains all these words imply parity, equivalency, common risk, mutual advantage. And he who can arrange a commercial operation, by which he is cer- tain to realize great profits and to inflict great losses, is a taker of merchandise, but can hardly be said to be a trader in it. I am sensible that this is the nice and difficult point in the whole discussion. But, I put it to the calm re- flection and to. the consciences of my hearers, whether they would not feel easier in their business, if all use of superior and certain knowledge were entirely ex- cluded from it. Long as this use has obtained, and warmly as it is sometimes defended, yet I ask, if the 4* 42 THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. moral sentiments of the trading community itself, would not be relieved by giving it up? This, if it be true, is certainly a weighty consideration. I admit, in- deed, as I have before done, that no vague sentiment is to settle the question. But when I find that there is even in vague sentiment, something like a hook that holds the mind in suspense, or will not let the mind be satisfied with departure from it, that circum- stance deserves, I think, to arrest attention. I will frankly confess, that my own mind has been in this very situation. I did not see at one time, how the case of general information and opinion which it is lawful to use, could be separated from the case of particular knowledge. But I now entertain a differ- ent, and a more decided opinion. And the considera- tion, with me, which has changed uneasiness into doubt, and doubt into a new, and as I think, corrected judg- ment, is that which I have last stated it is the consid- eration, that is to say, of the very nature of a contract. A contract does not imply equal powers, equal gen- eral information, equal shrewdness in the contracting parties ; but it does imply, as it appears to me, equal actual knowledge. My neighbor may think himself superior to me in all other respects, and he may tell me so, and yet I will trade with him ; we still stand upon ground that I am willing to consider equal. But let him tell me that he knows something touching the manufacture, quality, condition, or relations of the article to be sold, which I do not know, and which affects the value of the article ; and I stop upon the threshold ; we cannot traffic ; there may be a game of hazard which he and I consent to play; but there is an end of all trading. If this be true, then THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. 43 the condition of a regular and lawful contract is, that there be no secrets in it ; no secrets, either in the kind or quality of the merchandise, or in the breast, or in the pocket of the dealer. Let them all be swept away let them be swept out, all secrets from all hiding-places, from all coverts of subterfuge and chicanery and this, at least, I am certain of, that business would occasion fewer wounds of conscience, to all honorable and virtuous communities. APPENDIX TO THE FOREGOING DISCOURSE. Some remarks upon the foregoing discourse, which had reached the author's ear during the weekly in- terval, before the delivery of the next discourse, lead him before entering upon it, to offer the following observations. It may be thought, that in my discourse of the last Sunday evening, I have leaned to a view of the prin- ciples of trade, which is too indulgent to its question- able practices. I am most anxious to guard against such an inference; and yet I must hesitate to yield exactly to the tone of objection which may possibly be adopted by some of my hearers. The pulpit is not to speak any peculiar language on this subject, because it is the pulpit. The language of truth is what we seek ; the language which would be true any where. Neither is the pulpit to be looked upon as a post of duty, which is to serve only the purpose of assault, 44 THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. whose business it is to assail any particular class of persons, merchants or others : nor is the church a pro- per place for men to come to, in order to enjoy the gratification of seeing other men attacked. Nor is it the only business of the moral teacher, to denounce the sins of a violated conscience ; it is sometimes quite as important to defend weak consciences. Nothing can be worse for a man than to act upon a principle of which he doubts the correctness. He is then doing wrong, even when the thing he does may be right. His conscience becomes weakened by wounds without cause ; it is floating on a sea of doubt, and may be borne far beyond the bounds of rectitude. It is thus, that there arises in a community, a general and per- nicious habit of paltering with conscience^ of talking about certain principles as very good in theory, but as impracticable in fact, of slurring over the Christian rule with innuendoes, of commending it, indeed, and in a sort but how ? Why, of treacherously commending it, with those ironical praises, and ambiguous hints, and knowing glances of eye, which more effectually than any thing else, break down all principle. On the contrary, let us come out fairly and esta- blish the true doctrine, on independent grounds, with fair reasoning, without any bias against men of busi- ness or for them, and then shall we stand upon the stable basis of conscience and principle, and be able to define its boundaries. If it be expedient and inevi- table, that men should, in business as in every thing else, act to a certain extent, upon their own superior sagacity, power and information, let us plainly say so ; and then let us faithfully warn them against going too far. Now, nobody doubts, I presume, that they may THE MORAL LAW OF C0NTRACT8. 45 go too far ; that the man of sagacity may overreach an idiot ; that the monopolist and the usurer may abuse his power ; and that he who possesses superior information may dishonestly and cruelly use it. And, therefore, it was less necessary to insist upon these points, than it was to discuss the great question, and the only question ; viz., whether these advantages may be used at all. If they may not be used at all, then all commerce, in its actual, and I think, inevitable procedures, is a system of knavery. If it is not a sys- tem of knavery, then it is important to defend it from that charge. And it is the more important, because, against merchants, from their acquiring greater wealth probably, there are peculiar prejudices in the commu- nity. The manufacturer may use his superior infor- mation his particular invention that is he may get a patent for it, i. e., a monopoly, and every other pro- fession may do substantially the same thing, and not a word is said against it. But if the merchant does this, he is called into serious question. And influenced by this general distrust, he calls himself in question too. But unfortunately for him, instead of thinking deeply upon the matter, and settling himself upon some foun- dation of general principle, he is liable to give himself up to the suggestions of temporary expediency. He is not quite satisfied, perhaps, with what he is doing, and yet, he says, that he must do it, or he cannot get along a way of reasoning that I hold to be most in- jurious to his character. Let him then, I say, settle some just principle, and conscientiously act upon it. They are general principles, I must desire you to observe, which I have attempted to establish. The questions that arise upon the application of these 46 THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACT*. principles are, of course, numerous and Complicated. I could not enter into them. My inexperience disqual- ified me. And besides, it was impossible to meet the the questions of every man's mind. But, by way of guarding against any false inferences from what I have said, let me offer two suggestions. In the first place, I have not intended to touch any questions about cor- porations, or about combinations and conspiracies to defraud. My discussion has been occupied with sim- ple and single-handed dealings of man with man. In the next place, if my views have seemed to any one to lean to an unjust decision of any case, then, I say, that they are to be limited and restrained by that very case. The very principle I adopt, is that of restricting the fair action of trade within the boundaries of justice and philanthropy. I must add, in fine, that in defending the right in trade, the impression upon the popular ear, may natu- rally enough have been, that I have not sufficiently considered the wrong. The wrong, let me observe here, will properly come under our consideration in another place. What I say now is, that if the prin- ciples I have laid down, have seemed to any one to verge towards an undue license, I must most earnestly protest against his inference. That very license, I say, is the point to which the principle shall not go. And I say more explicitly, that although the vender of any goods is not bound to assist the buyer with his judgment, yet that he is bound to point out any latent defect, and he is bound, by the general trust reposed in him on that point, to sell at the market price ; and again, that monopoly, whether of money or other com- modities, although it must inevitably raise the prices, THE MORAL LAW OF CONTRACTS. 47 although it must be governed in all ordinary cases, by the market value, yet when it can control the market price, is bound to use its power with moderation ; and finally, that he who acts upon superior information, though he may lawfully do so, shall not press his ad- vantage to the extent of any fraudulent use, or to the infliction of any gross and undeserved injury that he shall not press it farther than is necessary, reasonably to reward vigilance and admonish indolence that he shall not press it farther than the wholesome action of trade, and the true welfare of the whole community, requires. 48 DISCOURSE II. ON THE MORAL END OF BUSINESS. PROVERBS XX. 15. There is gold and a multitude of RUBIES, BUT THE LIPS OF KNOWLEDGE, (i. E. OF RECTITUDE,) IS A PRECIOUS JEWEL. My subject this evening is the moral end of busi- ness. Let me first attempt to define my meaning in the use of this phrase the moral end of business. It is not the end for which property should be sought. It is not the moral purpose to be answered by the acquisition, but by the process of acquisition. And again, it is not the end of industry in general that is a more comprehensive subject but it is the end of business in particular, of barter, of commerce. " The end of business ?" some one may say, " why, the end of business is to obtain property ; the end of the process of acquisition is acquisition." If I addressed any person whose mind had not gone behind that ready and obvious answer to ultimate and deeper rea- sons, I should venture to say, that a revelation is to be maMe to him, of a more exalted aim in business, of a higher, and at the same time, more perilous scene of action in its pursuits, than he has yet imagined. In other words, I hold that the ultimate end of all busi- ness is a moral end. I believe that business I mean TIIE MORAL END OF BUSINESS. 49 not labor but barter, traffic would never have exist- ed, if there had been no end but sustenance. The animal races obtain subsistence upon an easier and simpler plan ; but for man there is a higher end, and that is moral. The broad grounds of this position I find in the ob- vious designs of Providence, and in the evident adap- tation to this moral end, of business itself. There is, then, a design for which all things were made and ordained, going beyond the things them- selves. To say that things were made, or that the arrangements and relations of things were ordained, for their own sake, is a proposition without meaning. The world, its structure, productions, laws and events, have no good nor evil in them none, but as they pro- duce these results, in the experience of living crea- tures. The end, then, of the inanimate creation, is the welfare of the living, and, therefore, especially of the intelligent creation. But the welfare of human beings lies essentially in their moral culture. All is wrong, every where, if all is not right there. All of design, that there is in this lower creation, presses upon that point. The universe is a moral chaos without that de- sign, and it is a moral desolation to every mind in which that design is not accomplished. Life, then, has an ultimate purpose. We are not appointed to pass through this life, barely that we may live. We are not impelled, both by disposition and necessity, to buy and sell, barely that we may do it ; nor to get gain, barely that we may get it. There is an end in business be- yond supply. There is an object, in the acquisition of wealth, beyond success. There is a final cauee of human traffic ; and that is virtue. 5 50 THE MORAL END OP BUSINESS. With this view of the moral end of business, falls in the constant doctrine of all elevated philosophy and true religion. Life, say the expounders of every creed, is a probation. The circumstances in which we are placed the events, the scenes of our mortal lot the bright visions that cheer us, the dark clouds that overshadow us all these are not an idle show, nor do they exist for themselves alone, nor because they must exist by the fiat of some blind chance ; but they have a purpose ; and that purpose is expressed in the word, probation. Now, if any thing deserves to be considered as a part of that probation, it is busi- ness. Life, say the wise, is a school. In this school there are lessons ; toil is a lesson ; trial is a lesson ; and business, too, is a lesson. But the end of a lesson is, that something be learned. And the end of busi- ness is, that truth, rectitude, virtue, be learned. This is the ultimate design proposed by Heaven, and it is a design which every wise man, engaged in that calling, will propose to himself. It is no extravagance, there- fore, but the simple assertion of a truth, to say to a man so engaged, and to say emphatically, " You have an end to gain beyond success ; and that is the moral rectitude of your own mind. ,, That business is so exquisitely adapted to accomplish that purpose, is another argument with me to prove that such is the intention of its Ordainer, was its design. I can conceive that things might have been ordered otherwise ; that human beings might have been formed for industry, and not for traffic. I can conceive man and nature to have been so constituted, that each indi- vidual should, by solitary labor, have drawn from the earth his sustenance ; and that a vesture softer, richer, THE MORAL END OP BUSINESS. 51 and more graceful than is ever wrought in the looms of our manufactories, might have been woven upon his body, by the same invisible hands that have thus clothed the beasts of the desert, and the birds of the air, and the lilies of the field, so that Solomon in all his glory was not arrayed like one of them. Then might man have held only the sweet counsel of so- ciety with his fellow, and never have been called to engage with him in the strife of business. Then, too, would he have been saved from all the dangers and vices of human traffic. But then, too, would the lofty virtues cultivated in this sphere of life, never have had an existence. For business, I repeat, is admirably adapted to form such virtues. It is apt, I know it is said, to corrupt men ; but the truth is, it cor- rupts only those who are willing to be corrupted. An honest man, a man who sincerely desires to attain to a lofty and unbending uprightness, could scarcely seek a discipline more perfectly fitted to that end, than the discipline of trade. For what is trade ? It is the constant adjustment of the claims of different parties, a man's self being one of the parties. This competi- tion of rights and interests might not invade the soli- tary study, or the separate tasks of the work-shop, or the labors of the silent field, once a day ; but it press- es upon the merchant and trader continually. Do you say that it presses too hard ? Then I reply, must the sense of rectitude be made the stronger to meet the trial. Every plea of this nature is an argument for strenuous moral effort. Shall I be told that the questions which often arise are very perplexing ; that the case to be decided comes, oftentimes, not under a definite rule but under a general principle, whose 52 THE MORAL END OF BUSINESS. very generality is perilous to the conscience ? It is indeed. Here, perhaps, lies the great peril of business, in the generality of the rule. For conscience does not in most cases definitely say, " thou shalt do this thing, and thou shalt do that." It says always, " thou shalt do right," but what that is, is not always clear. And hence it is, that a man may take care to offend against no definite remonstrance of conscience, and that he may be, in the common acceptation, an honest man ; and yet, that he may be a selfish, exacting and oppressive man ; a man who can never recognize the rights and interests of others ; who can never see any thing but on the side that is favorable to himself; who drowns the voice of his modest neighbor, with always and loudly saying, " Oh I this is right, and that can't be" a man, in fine, who, although he sel- dom, perhaps, never offends against any assignable or definite precept of conscience, has swerved altogether from all uprightness and generosity. What then is to be done ? A work, I answer, of the most ennobling character. A man must do more than to attain to punctilious honesty in his actions ; he must train his whole soul, his judgment, his sentiments and affec- tions, to uprightness, candour and good will. In fine, I look upon business as one vast scene of moral action. " The thousand wheels of commerce," with all their swift and complicated revolutions, I regard as an immense moral machinery. Meanness and cunning may lurk amidst it, but it was not de- signed for that degradation. That must be a noble scene of action, where conscience is felt to be a law. And it is felt to be the law of business ; its very vio- lations prove it such. It is the enthroned sovereign of THE MORAL END OF BUSINESS. 53 the plan ; disobedience, disloyalty, give attestation to it. Nothing is too holy to connect with it. There is a temple in one of the cities of Europe, through which is the very passage to the market-place ; and those who pass there, often rest their burthens, to turn aside and kneel at the altar of prayer. So were it meet that all men should enter upon their daily busi- ness. The temple of mammon, should be the temple of God. The gates of trade should be as the entrance to the sanctuary of conscience. There is an eye of witnessing and searching scrutiny fixed upon every one of its doings. The presence of that all-seeing One, not confined, as some imagine, to the silent church or the solitary grove the presence of God, I think it not too solemn to say, is in every counting-room and warehouse of yonder mart, and ought to make it holy ground. I have thus attempted to show that business has an ultimate, moral end one going beyond the accumula- tion of property. This may also be shown to be true, not only on the scale of our private affairs, but on the great theatre of history. Commerce has always been an instrument in the hands of Providence, for accomplishing nobler ends than promoting the wealth of nations. It has been the grand civilizer of nations. It has been the active principle in all civilization. Or, to speak more accurately, it has presented that condition of things, in which civilization has always rapidly advanced, and without which, it never has. The principles of civili- zation, properly speaking, are the principles of human- ity the natural desire of knowledge, liberty and re- finement. But commerce seems to have been the 5* 54 THE MORAL END OF BUSINESS. germ, the original spring, that has put all other springs in action. Liberty has always followed its steps ; and with liberty, science and religion have gradually ad- vanced and improved ; and never without it. All those kingdoms of central Asia, and of Europe too, which commerce has never penetrated, have been, and are, despotisms. With its earliest birth on the Medi- terranean shore, freedom was born. Phoenicia, the merchants of whose cities, Tyre and Sidon, were ac- counted princes ; the Hebrew commonwealth, which earned on a trade through those parts ; the Grecian, Carthaginian and Roman States, were not only the freest, but they were the only free states of antiquity. In the middle ages, commerce broke down, in Europe, the feudal system, raising up in the Hanse Towns throughout Germany, Sweden and Norway, a body of men who were able to cope with barons and kings, and to wrest from them, their free charters and right- ful privileges. In England, its influence is proverbial ; the sheet-anchor it has long been considered, of her unequalled prosperity and intelligence. On our own happy shores, it has a still more unobstructed field, and is destined, I trust, to spread over the whole breadth of our interior domain, wealth, cultivation and refine- ment. Its moral influences are the only ones of which we stand in any doubt, and these, it need not be said, are of unequalled importance. The philanthropist, the Christian, the Christian preacher, are all bound to watch these influences with the closest attention, and to do all in their power to guard and elevate them. To this work I am attempting to contribute my hum- ble part ; and I conceive, that I have now r come to the THE MORAL END OF BUSINESS. 55 grand principle of safety and improvement, viz., that trade is essentially a moral business, that it has a moral end more important than success, that the attain- ment of this end is better than the acquisition of wealth, and that the failure of it, is worse than any commercial failure ; worse than bankruptcy, poverty, ruin. It is upon this point that I wish especially to insist ; but there are one or two topics, that may previously claim some attention. If, then, business is a moral dispensation, and its highest end is moral, I shall venture to call in question the commonly supposed desirableness of escaping from it the idea which prevails with so many of making a fortune in a few years, and afterwards of retiring to a state of leisure. If business really is a scene of wor- thy employment and of high moral action, I do not see why the moderate pursuit of it should not be laid down in the plan of entire active life ; and why upon this plan, a man should not determine to give only so much time each day to his avocations, as would be compatible with such a plan ; only so much time, in other words, as will be compatible with the daily en- joyment of life, with reading, society, domestic inter- course, and all the duties of philanthropy and devo- tion. If the merchant does not dislike or despise his employment and it is when he makes himself the mere slave of business, that he creates the greatest real objections to it if, I say, he looks upon his em- ployment as lawful and laudable, an appointment of God to accomplish good purposes in this world and better for the next ; why should he not, like the physi- cian, the lawyer and clergyman, like the husbandman 56 THE MORAL END OF BUSINESS, and artisan, continue in it, through the period of active life ; and adjust his views, expectations and engage- ments to that reasonable plan ? But now, instead of this, what do we see around us ? Why, men are en- gaging in business here, at home, in their own coun- try, in the bosom of their families and amidst their friends as if they were in a foreign and infectious clime ; and must be in haste to make their fortunes, that they may escape with their lives to some place of safety, ease, and enjoyment ! And now, what sort of preparation for retirement is this life, absorbed in business ? It is precisely that sort of preparation that unfits a man for retirement. Nothing will work well or agreeably in experience, which has not some foundation in previous habits and practice. But for all those things which are to be a man's resources in retirement, his previous life, per- haps, has given him not a moment of time. He has really no rural tastes ; for he has scarcely seen the country for years, except on hurried journeys of busi- ness ; the busy wheels of commerce now, alas ! roll through the year, and he is chained to them every month. He has made no acquaintance with the fine arts ; no music has there been for his ear but the clink of gold ; no pictures for his eye, but fine colored draw- ings of houses and lots, or of fancy villages and towns. He has cultivated no habits of reading ; and what I hold to be just as fatal to the happiness of any life, retired or active he has cultivated no habits of devo- tion. Add to all this, that he is thrown upon the dan- gerous state of luxurious leisure that prepared, en- riched, productive hot-bed of prurient imaginations and teeming passions without any guards against its THE MORAL END OP BUSINESS. 57 moral perils. And what is likely to be the conse- quence ? He will become perhaps an indolent and bloate dsensualist, cumbering the beautiful grounds, on which he vegetates rather than lives ; or, from the vio- lent change of his habits, you will soon hear, perhaps, that, without any other cause than the change, he is dead ; or he may live on, in weariness and ennui, wishing in his heart, that he were back again, though it were to take his place behind the counter of the humblest shop. I do not pretend, of course, that I am pourtraying the case of every man, who is proposing to retire from business. There are those, doubtless, whose views of retiring are reasonable and praise-worthy ; who do not propose to escape from all employment; who are living religiously and virtuously in the midst of their business, and not unwisely intending to make up for the deficiency of those qualities in retirement ; who wish to improve and beautify some pleasant rural abode, and thus, and in many other ways, to be use- ful to the country around them. To such a retire- ment, I have nothing to object : and I only venture to suggest, as an obvious dictate of good sense, that he who proposes, some day, to retire from business, should, in the meantime, cultivate those qualities and habits, which will make him happy in retirement. But this I also say, that I do more than doubt, whether any man, who is completely engrossed in business, from morn- ing till night, for twenty or thirty years, can be pre- pared to enjoy or improve a life of leisure. Another topic, of which I wish to speak, is the rage for speculation. I wish to speak of it now in a partic- ular view as interfering, that is to say, with the moral 58 THE MORAL END OF BUSINESS, end of business. And here, again, let me observe, that I can have nothing to do with instances, with ex- ceptions. I can only speak of the general tendency of things. And it is not against speculation simply, that I have any thing to allege. All business possesses more or less of this character. Every thing is bought on the expectation of selling it for more. But this rage for speculation, this eagerness of many for sud- den and stupendous accumulation, this spirit of gam- bling in trade, is a different thing. It proceeds on principles entirely different from the maxims of a reg- ular and pains-taking business. It is not looking to dil- igence and fidelity for a fair reward, but to change and chance for a fortunate turn. It is drawing away men's minds from the healthful processes of sober in- dustry and attention to business, and leading them to wait in feverish excitement, as at the wheel of a lot- tery. The proper basis of success vigilant care and labor is forsaken for a system of baseless credit. Upon this system, men proceed, straining their means and stretching their responsibilities, till, in calm times, they can scarcely hold on upon their position ; and when a sudden jar shakes the commercial world, or a sudden blast sweeps over it, many fall, like untimely fruit, from the towering tree of fancied prosperity. Upon this system, many imagine that they are doing well, when they are not doing well. They rush into expenses, which they cannot afford, upon the strength, not of their actual, but of their imaginary or expected means. Young men, who, in former days, would have been advised to walk awhile longer, and patiently to tread the upward path, must buy horses and vehicles for their accommodation, and mounted upon the car THE MORAL END OF BUSINESS. 59 of fancied independence, they are hurried only to swifter destruction. This system of rash and adventurous speculation, overlooks all the moral uses and ends of business. To do business and get gain, honestly and conscien- tiously, is a good thing. It is a useful discipline of the character. I look upon a man who has acquired wealth, in a laudable, conscientious and generous pur- suit of business, not only with a respect far beyond what I can feel for his wealth for which, indeed, ab- stractly, I can feel none at all but with the distinct feeling that he has acquired something far more valu- able than opulence. But for this discipline of the character, for the reasonableness and rectitude of mind which a regular business intercourse may form, speculation furnishes but a narrow field, if any at all ; such speculation, I mean, as has lately created a popu- lar phrenzy in this country about the sudden acquisi- tion of property . The game which men were play- ing was too rapid, and the stake too large, to admit of the calm discriminations of conscience, and the rea- sonable contemplation of moral ends. Wealth came to be looked upon as the only end. And immediate wealth, was the agitating prize. Men could not wait for the slow and disciplinary methods, by which Pro- vidence designed that they should acquire it; but they felt, as if it were the order of Providence, that fortunes should fall direct from heaven into their open hands. Rather, should we not say, that multitudes did not look to heaven at all, but to speculation itself, instead, as if it were a god, or some won- der-working magician, at least, that was suddenly to endow them with opulence. Acquisition became 60 THE MORAL END OP BUSINESS. the story of an Arabian tale ; and men's minds were filled with romantic schemes, and visionary hopes, and vain longings, rather than with sobriety, and candor, and moderation, and gratitude, and trust in Heaven. This insane and insatiable passion for accumulation, ever ready, when circumstances favor, to seize upon the public mind, is that " love of money which is the root of all evil," that " covetousness which is idolatry." It springs from an undue, an idolatrous estimate of the value of property. Many are feeling, that nothing nothing will do for them or for their children, but wealth ; not a good character, not well-trained and well exerted faculties, not virtue, not the hope of hea- ven nothing but wealth. It is their god, and the god of their families. Their sons are growing up to the same worship of it, and to an equally baneful reliance upon it for the future ; they are rushing into expenses which the divided property of their father's house will not en- able them to sustain ; and they are preparing to be in turn and from necessity, slaves to the same idol. How truly is it written, that " they that will be rich, fall into temptation, and a snare, and into many foolish and hurtful lusts, which drown men in destruction and perdition !" There is no need that they should be rich ; but they will be rich. All the noblest functions of life may be discharged without wealth, all its high- est honors obtained, all its purest pleasures enjoyed ; yet I repeat it nothing nothing will do but wealth. Disappoint a man of this, and he mourns as if the highest end of life were defeated. Strip him of this : and this gone, all is gone. Strip him of this, and I shall point to no unheard of experience, when I say he had rather die than live ! THE MOllAL END OF BUSINESS. 01 The grievous mistake, the mournful evil implied in this oversight of the great spiritual end, which should be sought in all earthly pursuits, is the subject to which I wished to draw your attention in the last place. It is not merely in the haste to be rich, accompanied with the intention to retire from business to a state of luxurious and self-indulgent leisure ; it is not merely in the rage for speculation, that the evils of overlook- ing the moral aim of business are seen ; but they sink deep into the heart, in the ordinary walks of regular and daily occupation ; dethroning the spiritual nature from its proper place, vitiating the affections, and losing some of the noblest opportunities for virtue, that can be lost on earth. The spiritual nature, I say, is dethroned from its pro- per place, by this substitution of the immediate end, wealth, for the ultimate end, virtue. Who is this be- ing, that labors for nothing but property; with no thought beyond it ; with the feeling that nothing will do without it ; with the feeling that there are no ends in life, that can satisfy him, if that end is not gained ? You will not tell me, that it is a being of my own fancy. You have probably known such ; perhaps, some of you are such. I have known men of this way of think- ing, and men, too, of sense and of amiable temper. Who then, I ask again, is this being? He is an im- mortal being ; and his views ought to stretch them- selves to eternity ought to seek an ever-expanding good. And this being, so immortal in his nature, so infinite in faculties to what is he looking ? To the sub- lime mountain range, that spreads along the horizon of this world ? To the glorious host of glittering stars, the majestic train of night, the infinite regions of 6 C2 THE MORAL END OF BUSINESS. heaven ? No his is no upward gaze, no wide vision cf the world -to a speck of earthly dust he is looking. He might lift his eye, a philosophic eye, to the magni- ficence of the universe, for an object ; and upon what is it fixed ? Upon the mole-hill beneath his feet ! That is his end. Every thing is naught, if that is gone. He is an immortal being, I repeat ; he may be enrobed in that vesture of light, of virtue, which never shall decay ; and he is to live through such ages, that the time shall come when to his eye all the splendors of fortune, of gilded palace and gorgeous equipage, shall be no more than the spangle that falls from a royal robe ; and yet, in that glittering particle of earthly dust, is his soul absorbed and bound up. I am not saying, now, that he is willing to lose his soul for that. This he may do. But I only say now, that he sets his soul upon that, and feels it to be an end so dear, that the irretrievable loss of it, the doom of poverty, is death to him ; nay, to his sober and deliberate judgment for I have known such instances is worse than death itself! And yet he is an immortal being, I repeat, and he is sent into this world on an errand ? What errand ? What is the great mission on which the Master of life hath sent him here ? To get riches ? To amass gold coins, and bank notes? To scrape together a little of the dust of this earth ; and then to lie down upon it and embrace it, in the indolence of enjoyment, or in the rapture of possession ? Is such worldliness possi- ble ? Worldliness ! Why, it is not worldliness. That should be the quality of being attached to a world to all that it can give, and not to one thin 7 only that it can give to fame, to power, to moral power, to influ- ence, to the admiration of the world. Worldliness, TBS MORAL END OF BV8IN1 C3, methinks, should be something greater than men make it should stretch itself out to the breadth of the great globe, and not wind itself up like a worm in the web of selfish possession. If I must be worldly, let me have the worldliness of Alexander, and not of Croesus. And wealth too I had thought it was a means and not an end an instrument which a noble human being handles, and not a heap of shining dust in which he buries himself; something that a man could drop from his hand, and still be a man be all that he ever was and compass all the noble ends that pertain to a human being. What if you be poor ? Are you not still a man Oh ! heaven, and mayest be a spirit, and have a universe of spiritual possessions for your trea- sure. What if you be poor ? You may still walk through the world in freedom and in joy. You may still tread the glorious path of virtue. You may still win the bright prize of immortality. You may still achieve purposes on earth that constitute all the glory of earth, and ends in heaven, that constitute all the glory of heaven ! Nay, if such must be the effect of wealth, I would say, let me be poor. I would pray God that I might be poor. Rather, and more wisely ought I, perhaps, to say with Agur, " give me neither poverty nor riches ; lest I be full and deny thee, and say, who is the Lord ? or lest I be poor, and steal, and take the name of my God in vain." The many, corrupting and soul-destroying vices en- gendered in the mind by this lamentable oversight of the spiritual aim in business, deserve a separate anrl solemn consideration. I believe that you will not accuse me of any disposi- tion to press unreasonable charges against men of busi- 64 THE MORAL END OF BUSINESS. ness. I cannot possibly let the pulpit throw burthens of responsibility, or warnings of danger on this sphere of life, as if others were not in their measure open to similar admonitions. I come not here to make war upon any particular class. I pray you not to regard this pulpit as holding any relation to you, but that of a faithful and Christian friend, or as having any inter- est in the world connected with business, but your own true interest. Above all things do I deprecate that worldly and most pernicious habit of hearing and ap- proving very good things in the pulpit, and going away, and calmly doing very bad things in the world, as if the two had no real connection that habit of listen- ing to the admonitions and rebukes of the pulpit with a sort of demure respect, or with significant glances at your neighbors, and then of going away, commending the doctrine with your lips, to violate it in your lives as if you said, " well, the pulpit has acted its part, and now we will go and act ouvs." I act no part here. God forbid ! I endeavor to be reasonable and gust, in what I say here. I take no liberty to be extravagant in this place, because I cannot be answered. I hold myself solemnly bound to say nothing recklessly and for effect. I occupy here no isolated position. I am continually thinking what my hearers will fairly have to say on their part, and striving fairly to meet it. I speak to you simply as one man may speak to another, as soul may speak to its brother soul ; and I solemnly and affectionately say, what I would have you say to me in a change of place I say that the pursuits of business are perilous to your virtue. On this subject, I cannot, indeed, speak with the lan- guage of experience. But I cannot forget that the voice THE MORAL KND 0>' HUSIflESS. C5 of all moral instruction, in all ages and in all pounl is a voice of warning. I cannot forget that thc'y'oice of Holy Scripture falls in solemn accents upon the perils attending the pursuit of wealth. How solemn, how Strong, how pertinent those accents are, I may not know, but I most not, for that reason, withhold them. " Wo unto you who are rich," saith the holy word, "for ye have not received your consolation. Wo unto you that are full, for ye shall hunger." Hunger ? What hath wealth to do with hunger? And yet there is a hunger. What is it ? What can it be but the hun- gering of the soul ; and that is the point which, in this discourse, I press upon your attention. And again it says, " your riches are corrupted ; your gold and sil- ver is cankered :" and is it not cankered in the very hearts of those whom wealth has made proud, vain, anxious and jealous, or seif-indulgent, sensual, diseased and miserable ? " And the rust of them," so proceeds the holy text, " shall be a witness against you, and shall eat your flesh as it were fire." Ah ! the rust of riches ! not that portion of them which is kept bright in good and holy uses " and the consuming fire" of the pas- sions which wealth engenders ! No rich man I lay it down as an axiom of all experience no rich man is safe, who is not a benevolent man. No rich man is safe, but in the imitation of that benevolent God, who is the possessor and dispenser of all the riches of the universe. What else, mean the miseries of a selfishly luxurious and fashionable life every where? What mean the sighs that come up from the perlieus, aiul couches, and most secret haunts of all splendid and self-indulgent opulence ? Do not tell me that other men are sufferers too. Say not that the poor, and des- b* 6Q THE MORAL END OF BUSINESS. titute and forlorn, are miserable also. Ah ! just hea- ven ! thou hast in thy mysterious wisdom, appointed to them a lot hard, full hard, to bear. Poor house- less wretches! who "eat the bitter bread of penury, and drink the baleful cup of misery ;" the winter's wind blows keenly through your "looped and win- dowed raggedness ;" your children wander about un- shod, unclothed and untended ; I wonder not that ye sigh. But why should those who are surrounded with every thing that heart can wish, or imagination conceive the very crumbs that fall from whose table of prosperity might feed hundreds why should they sigh amidst their profusion and splendor? They have broken the bond that should connect power with useful- ness, and opulence with mercy. That is the reason. They have taken up their treasures, and wandered away into a forbidden world of their own, far from the sympathies of suffering humanity ; and the heavy night-dews are descending upon their splendid revels; and the all-gladdening light of heavenly beneficence is exchanged for the sickly glare of selfish enjoyment ; and happiness, the blessed angel that hovers over gen- erous deeds and heroic virtues, has fled away from that world of false gaiety and fashionable exclusion. I have, perhaps, wandered a moment from the point before me the peril of business though as business is usually aiming at wealth, I may be considered rath- er as having only pressed that point to some of its ul- timate bearings. But the peril of business specifically considered ; and I ask, if there is not good ground for the admoni- tions on this point, of every moral and holy teacher of eveiy age ? What means, if there is not, that eternal THE MORAL END OF BUSINESS. 07 liisingenuity of trade, that is ever putting on fair ap- pearances and false pretences of "the buyer that says, it is naught, it is naught, but when he is gone his way, then boasteth" of the seller, who is always exhibiting the best samples, not fair but false samples, of what lie has to sell ; of the seller, I say, who, to use the language of another, " if he is tying up a bundle of quills, will place several in the centre, of not half the value of the rest, and thus sends forth a hundred liars, with a fair outside, to proclaim as many falsehoods to the world ?" These practices, alas ! have fallen into the regular course of the business of many. All men expect them ; and therefore, you may say, that nobody is deceived. But deception is intended ; else why are these things done ? What if nobody is deceived ? The seller himself is corrupted. He may stand acquitted of dishonesty in the moral code of worldly traffic ; no man may charge him with dis- honesty ; and yet to himself he is a dishonest man. Did I say that nobody is deceived ! Nay, but some body is deceived. This man, the seller, is grossly, wofully deceived. He thinks to make a little profit by his contrivance ; and he is selling, by penny- worths', the very integrity of his soul. Yes, the pettiest shop where these things are done, may be to the spiritual vision, a place of more than tragic interest. It is the stage on which the great action of life is performed. There stands a man, who in the sharp collisions of daily traffic, might have polished his mind to the bright and beautiful image of trutn, who might have put on the noble brow of candor, and cherished the very soul of uprightness. I have known such a man. I have looked into his humble shop. I have seen the 68 THE MORAL END OF BUSINESS. mean and soiled articles with which he is dealing. And yet the process of things going on there, was as beau- tiful, as if it had been done in heaven ! But now, what is this man the man who always turns up to you the better side of every thing he sells the man of unceasing contrivances and expedients, his life long, to make things appear better than they are ? Be he the greatest merchant or the poorest huckster, he is a mean, a knavish and were I not awed by the thoughts of his immortality, I should say a con- temptible creature; whom nobody that knows him can love, whom nobody can trust, whom nobody can reverence. Not one thing in the dusty repository of things, great or small, which he deals with, is so vile as he. What is this thing then, which is done, or may be done in the house of traffic ? I tell you, though you may have thought not so of it I tell you that there, even there, a soul may be lost ! that that very structure, built for the gain of earth, may be the gate of hell ! Say not that this fearful appellation should be applied to worse places than that. A man may as certainly corrupt all the integrity and virtue of his soul in a warehouse or a shop, as in a gambling- house or a brothel. False to himself, then, may a man become, while he is walking through the perilous courses of traffic; false also to his neighbor. I cannot dwell much upon this topic ; but I will put one question ; not for re- proach, but for your sober consideration. Must it not render a man extremely liable to be selfish, that he is engaged in pursuits whose immediate and pal- pable end, is his own interest ? I wish to draw your attention to this peculiarity of trade. I do not say, THE MORAL END OF BVSDTBSft 'rJ that the motives which originally induce a man to enter into this sphere of life, may not be as benevolent M those of any other man ; but this is the point which I wish to have considered that while the learned professions have knowledge for their immediate object, and the artist and the artisan have the perfection of their work as the thing that directly engages their at- tention, the merchant and trader have for their im- mediate object, profit. Does not this circumstance greatly expose a man to be selfish ? Full well I know that many are not so ; that many resist and overcome this influence ; but I think, that it is to be resisted. And a wise man, who more deeply dreads the taint of Liward selfishness, than of outward dishonor, will take care to set up counter influences. And to this end, he should beware how he clenches his hand and closes his heart against the calls of suffering, the dic- tates of public spirit, and the claims of beneficence. To listen to them is, perhaps, his very salvation ! But the vitiating process of business may not stop with selfishness ; it is to be contemplated in still ano- ther and higher light. For how possible is it, that a man while engaged in exchanging and diffusing the bounties of heaven, while all countries and climes are pouring their blessings at his feet, while he lawfully deals with not one instrument, in mind or matter, but it was formed and fitted to his use by a beneficent hand how possible it is that he may forget and forsake the Being who has given him all things ! How possible is it that under the very accumulat-Dn of his blessings may be buried all his gratitude and piety that he may be too busy to pray, too full to be thankful, too much engrossed with the gifts to think of the Giver ! 70 THE MORAL END OF BUSINESS. The humblest giver expects some thanks ; he would think it a lack of ordinary human feeling in any one, to snatch at his bounties, without casting a look on the bestower ; he would gaze in astonishment at such heedless ingratitude and rapacity, and almost doubt whether the creatures he helped, could be human. Are they any more human do they any more deserve the name of men, when the object of such perverse and senseless ingratitude is the Infinite Benefactor 1 Would we know what aspect it bears before his eye ? Once, and more than once, hath that Infinite Benefac- tor spoken. I listen, and tremble as I listen, to that lofty adjuration, with which the sublime prophet hath set forth His contemplation of the ingratitude of his creatures. " Hear, O heavens, and give ear, O earth ! for the Lord hath spoken ; I have nourished and brought up children, and they have rebelled against me. The ox knoweth his owner, and the ass his mas- ter's crib ; but Israel doth not know ; my people doth not consider." Sad and grievous error even in the eye of reason ! Great default even to nature's reli- gion ! But art thou a Christian man what law shall acquit thee, if that heavy charge lies at thy door at the door of thy warehouse at the door of thy dwell- ing. Beware, lest thou forget God in his mercies ! the Giver in his gifts ! lest the light be gone from thy prosperity, and prayer from thy heart, and the love of thy neighbor from the labors of thy calling, and the hope of heaven from the abundance of thine earthly estate ! But not with words of warning ever painful to use, and not always profitable would I now dismiss you from the house of God. I would not close this dia- THF. MORAL END OP BUSINESS. 71 course, in which I may seem to have pressed heavily on the evils to which business exposes those who are engaged in it, without holding up distinctly to view the great moral aim on which it is my main purpose to insist, and attempting to show its excellence. There is such a nobleness of character in the right course, that it is to that point I would last direct your attention. The aspirings of youth, the ambition of manhood, could receive no loftier moral direction than may be found in the sphere of business. The school of trade, with all its dangers, may be made one of the noblest schools of virtue in the world ; and it is of some importance to say it : because those who re- gard it as a sphere only of selfish interests and sordid calculations, are certain to win no lofty moral prizes in that school. There can be nothing more fatal to elevation of character in any sphere, whether it be of business or society, than to speak habitually of that sphere as given over to low aims and pursuits. If business is constantly spoken of as contracting the mind and corrupting the heart ; if the pursuit of pro- perty is universally satirized as selfish and grasping ; too many who engage in it will think of nothing but of adopting the character and the course so pointed out. Many causes have contributed, without doubt, to establish that disparaging estimate of business the spirit of feudal aristocracies, the pride of learning, the tone of literature, and the faults of business itself. I say, therefore, that there is no being in the world for whom I feel a higher moral respect and admiration, than for the upright man of business ; no, not for the philanthropist, the missionary, or the martyr. I feel that I could more easily be a martyr, than a man 72 THE MORAL END OF BUSINESS. of that lofty moral uprightness. And let me say yet more distinctly, that it is not for the generous man, that I feel this kind of respect that seems to me a lower quality a mere impulse, compared with the lofty virtue I speak of. It is not for the man who distributes extensive charities, who bestows magnifi- cent donations. That may be all very well I speak not to disparage it I wish there were more of it ; and yet it may all consist with a want of the true, lofty, unbending uprightness. That is not the man then, of whom I speak ; but it is he who stands, amidst all the swaying interests and perilous exigen- cies of trade, firm, calm, disinterested and upright. It is the man, who can see another man's interests, just as clearly as his own. It is the man whose mind, his own advantage does not blind nor cloud for an instant; who could sit a judge, upon a question between himself and his neighbor, just as safely, as the purest magistrate upon the bench of justice. Ah ! how much richer than ermine, how far nobler than the train of magisterial authority, how more awful than the guarded bench of majesty, is that simple, magnanimous and majestic truth. Yes, it is the man who is true true to himself, to his neigh- bor and to his God true to the right true to his con- science and who feels, that the slightest suggestion of that conscience, is more to him than the chance of acquiring an hundred estates. Do I not speak to some such one now ? Stands there not here, some man of such glorious virtue, of such fidelity to truth and to God. Good friend ! I call upon you to hold fast to that integrity, as the dear- est treasure of existence. Though storms of com- THE MORAL END OF BU8IN 73 mercial distress sweep over you, and the wreck of all worldly hopes threaten you, hold on to that as the plank that shall bear your soul unhurt to its haven. Re- member that which thy Saviour hath spoken " what shall it profit a man, if he gain the whole world, and lose his own soul ?" Remember that there is a worse bankruptcy than that which is recorded in an earth- ly court the bankruptcy that is recorded in heaven bankruptcy in thy soul all poor, and broken down, and desolate there all shame and sorrow and mourn- ing, instead of that glorious integrity, which should have shone like an angel's presence, in the darkest prison that ever spread its shadow over human calam- ity. Heaven and earth may pass away, but the word of Christ the word of thy truth, let it pass from thee never ! 74 DISCOURSE III. ON THE USES OF LABOR, AND THE PASSION FOR A FORTUNE. II. THESSALONIANS III. 10. For even when we were WITH YOU, THIS WE COMMANDED YOU, THAT IF ANY MAN WOULD NOT WORK, NEITHER SHOULD HE EAT. I wish to invite your attention this evening to the uses of labor, and the passion for a fortune. The topics, it is obvious, are closely connected. The lat- ter, indeed, is my main subject ; but as preliminary to it, I wish to set forth, as I regard it, the great law of human industry. It is worthy, I think, of being con- sidered, and religiously considered, as the chief law of all human improvement and happiness. And if there be any attempt to escape from this law, or if there be any tendency of the public mind, at any time, to the same point, the eye of the moral observer should be instantly drawn to that point, as one most vital to the public welfare. That there has been such a tendency of the public mind in this country, that it has been most signally manifest within a few years past, and that although it has found in cities the principal field of its manifestation, it has spread itself over the country too ; that multitudes have become suddenly possessed with a new idea, the idea of making a fortune in a AND THE PASSION FOR A FORTUNE. 75 brief time, and then of retiring to a state of ease and independence this is the main fact on which I shall insist, and of which I shall endeavor to point out the dangerous consequences. But let me first call your attention to the law which has thus, as I contend, in spirit at least, been broken. What then is the law ? It is, that industry working, either with the hand or with the mind the application of the powers to some task, to the acheivement of some result, lies at the foundation of all human im- provement. Every step of our progress from infancy to man- hood, is proof of this. The process of education, rightly considered, is nothing else but wakening the powers to activity. It is through their own activity alone, that they are cultivated. It is not by the mere imposition of tasks, or requisition of lessons. The very purpose of the tasks and lessons is to awaken, and direct that activity. Knowledge itself cannot be gained, but upon this condition, and if it could be gained, would be useless without it. The state into which the human being is introduced, is from the first step of it to the last, designed to an- swer the purpose of such an education. Nature's education, in other words, answers in this respect, to the just idea of man's. Each sense, in succession, is elicited by surrounding objects, and it is only by re- peated trials and efforts, that it is brought to perfection. In like manner, does the scene of life appeal to every intellectual and every moral power. Life is a severe discipline, and demands every energy of human na- ture to meet it. Nature is a rigorous taskmaster ; and its language to the human race is, "if a man will not 76- THE USES OF LABOK, work, neither shall he eat." We are not sent into the world like animals, to crop the spontaneous herbage of the field, and then to lie down in indolent repose : but we are sent to dig the soil and plough the sea ; to do the business of cities and the work of. manufacto- ries. The raw material only is given us ; and by the processes of cookery and the fabrications of art, it is to be wrought to our purpose. The human frame itself is a most exquisite piece of mechanism, and it is de- signed in every part for work. The strength of the arm, the dexterity of the hand, and the delicacy of the finger, are all fitted for the accomplishment of this purpose- All this is evidently, not a matter of chance, but the result of design. The world is the great and appoint- ed school of industry. In an artificial state of society, I know, mankind are divided into the idle and the laboring classes ; but such, I maintain, was not the de- sign of providence. On the contrary, it was meant that all men, in one way or another, should work. If any human being could be completely released from this law of providence, if he should never be obliged so much as to stretch out his hand for any thing, if every thing came to him at a bare wish, if there were a slave appointed to minister to every sense, and the powers of nature were made, in like manner, to obey every thought, he would be a mere mass of inertness, uselessness and misery. Yes, such is man's task, and such is the world he is placed in. The world of matter is shapeless and void to all man's purposes, till he lays upon it the creative hand of labor. And so also is the world of mind. It is as true in mind as it is in matter, that the materials AND TIIK PASSION FOR A FORTUNE. 77 only are given us. Absolute truth ready made, no more presents itself to us in one department, than finished models of mechanism ready made, do in the other. ' Original principles there doubtless are in both ; but the result philosophy, that is to say, in the one case is as far to seek, as art and mechanism are in the other. Such, I repeat, is the world, and such is man. The earth he stands upon and the air he breathes are, so far as his improvement is concerned, but elements to be wrought by him to certain purposes. If he stood on earth passively and unconsciously imbibing the dew and sap, and spreading his arms to the light and air, he would be but a tree. If he grew up capable neither of purpose nor of improvement, with no guidance but instinct, and no powers but those of digestion and loco- motion, he would be but an animal. But he is more than this ; he is a man ; he is made to improve ; he is made, therefore, to think, to act, to work. Labor is his great function, his peculiar distinction, his privilege. Can he not think so ? Can he not see, that from being an animal to eat and drink and sleep, to become a worker to put forth the hand of ingenuity, and to pour his own thought into the worlds of nature, fashion- ing them into forms of grace and fabrics of conveni- ence, and converting them to purposes of improve- ment and happiness can he not see, I repeat, that this is the greatest possible step in privilege ? Labor, I say, is man's great function. The earth and the at- mosphere are his laboratory. With spade and plough, with mining-shafts and furnaces and forges, with fire and steam amidst the noise and whirl of swift and bright machinery, and abroad in the silent fields be- 7* 78 THE USES OF LABOR, neath the roofing sky, man was made to be ever work- ing, ever experimenting. And while he, and all his dwellings of care and toil, are borne onward with the circling skies, and the shows of heaven are around him, and their infinite depths image and invite his thought, still in all the worlds of philosophy, in the universe of intellect, man must be a worker. He is nothing, he can be nothing, he can achieve nothing, fulfil nothing, without working. Not only can he gain no lofty im- provement without this ; but without it, he can gain no tolerable happiness. So that he who gives himself up to utter indolence, finds it too hard for him ; and is obliged in self-defence, unless he be an idiot, to do something. The miserable victims of idleness and ennui, driven at last from their chosen resort, are compelled to work, to do something ; yes, to employ their wretched and worthless lives in " killing timer They must hunt down the hours as their prey. Yes, time that mere abstraction that sinks light as the air upon the eye-lids of the busy and the weary, to the idle is an enemy, clothed with gigantic armor ; and they must kill it, or themselves die. They cannot live in mere idleness ; and all the difference between them and others is, that they employ their activity to no useful end. They find, indeed, that the hardest work in the world is, to do nothing ! This reference to the class of mere idlers as it is called, leads me to offer one specification in laying down this law concerning industry. Suppose a man. then, to possess an immense, a boundless fortune, and that he holds himself discharged, in consequence, from all the ordinary cares and labors of life. Now, I main- tain, that in order to be either an improving, worthy AND HIE PASSION FOR A FORTUNE. 70 or happy man, lw must do one of two things. II< must cither devote himself to the accomplishment of some public objects ; or he must devote some hours of every day to his own intellectual cultivation. In any case, he must be, to a certain extent, a laborious man. The thought of his heart may be far different from this. He may think it his special privilege, as a man of fortune, to be exempt from all care and effort. To lounge on soft couches, to walk in pleasant gardens, to ride out for exercise, and to come home for feast- ing this may be his plan. But it will never do. It never did yet answer for any human being, and it never will. God has made a law against it, which no human power ever could annul, nor human ingenuity evade. That law is, that upon labor, either of the body or of the mind, all essential well-being shall de- pend. And if this law be not complied with, I verily believe that wealth is only a curse, and luxury only a more slippery road to destruction. The poor idler, I verily believe, is safer than the rich idler : and I doubt, whether he is not happier. I doubt whether the most miserable vagrancy, that sleeps in barns and sheds, and feeds upon the fragments of other men's ta- bles, and leaves its tattered garments upon every hedge, is so miserable, as surfeited opulence, sighing in palaces, sunk in the lethargy of indolence, loaded with plethory, groaning with weariness which no wholesome fatigue ever comes to relieve. The vagrant is, at least, obliged to walk from place to place, and thus far has the advantage over his fellow idler who can ride. Yes, he walks abroad in the fair morning no soft couch detains him he walks abroad among the fresh fields, by the sunny hedges and along the 80 THE USES OF LABOR, silent lanes, singing his idle song as he goes a crea- ture poor and wretched enough, no doubt but I am tempted to say, if I must be idle, give me that lot, ra- ther than to sit in the cheerless shadow of palace roofs, or to toss on downy beds of sluggish stupor or rack- ing pain. I have thus endeavored to state one of the cardinal and inflexible laws of all human improvement and hap- piness, I have already premised, that my purpose in doing so, was to speak of the spirit of gain, of the eagerness for fortune, as characteristics of modern business, which tend to the dishonor and violation of the law of labor. In proceeding to do this, let me more generally ob- serve, in the first place, that there has always been a public opinion in.the world, derogatory to labor. The necessity of exertion, though it is the very law under which God has placed mankind for their improvement and virtue, has always been regarded as a kind of de^ gradation has always been felt as a kind of reproach. With the exception of a few great geniuses, none so great as those who do nothing. Freedom from the ne^ cessity of exertion is looked upon as a privileged condition ; it is encircled with admiring eyes ; it abso- lutely gathers dignity and honor about it. One might think that a man would make some apologies for it, to the toiling world. Not at all ; he is proud of it. It is for the busy man to make apologies. He hopes you will excuse him ; he must work, or he must attend to his business. You would think he was about to do some mean action. You would think he was about to do something of which he is ashamed. And he is ashamed of it ! AND THE PASSION FOR A FORTUNE. St The time has hardly gone by, when even literary labor labor of the mind, the noblest of all labor, has suffered under this disparaging estimate. Authorship has always been held to be the proper subject for the patronage of condition. Some of the most distinguish- ed authors, have lived in obscurity, compared with the rich and fashionable around them, and have only forced their way into posthumous celebrity. The rewards of intellectual toil have usually been stinted to the provision of a bare, humble subsistence. . Not seldom has the re ward been scarcely a remove from starvation. But when we descend to manual labor, the comparison is still more striking. The laboring classes, operatives as they are significantly called in these days, are generally regarded but as a useful machinery to produce and manufacture comforts and luxuries for those that can buy them. And the laboring classes are so regarded, mainly, not because they are less informed and culti- vated, though that may be true, but because they are the laboring classes. Let any one of them be suddenly endowed with a fortune, let him be made independent of labor, and without any change of character, he im- mediately, in the general estimation, takes his place among what are called the upper classes. In those countries where the favoritism extended to the aristo- cracy, has made many of its members the vainest, most frivolous and useless of beings, it must be ap- parent, that many persons among the business classes are altogether their superiors in mind, in refinement, in all the noblest qualities ; and yet does the bare cir- cumstance of pecuniary independence carry it over every thing. They walk abroad in lordly pride, and the children of toil on every side, do homage to them. 82 THE USES OF LABOR, Let such an one enter any one of the villages of Eng- land or of this country, let him live there with no- thing to do and doing nothing, the year round and those who labor in the field and the workshop, will look upon him, in bare virtue of his ability to be idle, as altogether their superior. Yes, those who have wrought well in the great school of providence, who have toiled faithfully at their tasks and learned them, will pay this mental deference to the truant, to the idler, to him who learns nothing and does nothing aye, and because he does nothing. Nay, in that holy church, whose ministry is the strongest bond to phi- lanthropic exertion, the clergy, the very ministry of him who went about doing good, and had not where to lay his head, sinks, in the estimation of the whole world to the lowest point of depression, the moment it is called " a working clergy." That very epithet, working, seems, in spite of every counteracting con- sideration, to be a stigma upon every thing to which it can be applied. But besides this general opinion, there is a specific opinion or way of thinking, to which I have already referred, as opposed to our principle, and to which I wish now to invite your more particular attention. This opinion or way of thinking, I must endeavor to describe with some care, as it constitutes the basis of fact, from which the moral reflections of the remain- der of this discourse will arise. It will be admitted, then, in the general, I think, that modern business modern, I mean, as compared with that of an hundred or even fifty years ago has assumed a new character ; that it has departed from the staidness, regularity and moderation of former AND THE PASSION FOR A FORTUNE. H'3 days. The times when the business of the father de- scended to the son, and was expectejd to pass down as an heir-loom in the family ; when the risks were small and the gains were moderate, or if ample, still com- paratively sure, seem to have given way to the intense desire and the hazardous pursuit, of immediate and immense accumulation. It is not necessary to the statement I am making, that I should enter into the causes of this change. They are, doubtless, to be found in the unusual opportunities for gain, in the ex- traordinary extension of credits, and I think also, in the rapid expansion of the principle of liberty that is to say, in the intellectual activity, personal ambition and unfettered enterprize, which that principle has in- troduced into society. But whatever be the causes of the change, it will not be denied, I presume, that there has sprung up in connection with it, a new view of acquisition ; or rather, to state more exactly what I mean, that a view of acquisition, which, in former time, was confined to a few minds, has now taken possession of almost the entire business community, and constitutes therefore, beyond all former example, one of the great moral features of the times. I can- not, perhaps, briefly describe this view better than by denominating it, a. passion for making a fortune, and for making it speedily. I do not, of course, mean to say that this passion has not existed before. The love of money has always been a desire so strong, that it has needed for its restraint, all the checks and admoni- tions of reason and religion. There have always been those who have set their affections and expectations on a fortune, as something indispensable to their hap- piness. There have also appeared, from time to time, 84 THE USES OF LABOR, seasons of rash and raging speculation, as in the case of the South Sea and Mississippi stocks in England } disturbing, however, but occasionally the regular pro- gress of business. But the case with us, now, is dif- ferent. We have, at length, become conversant with times, in which these seasons of excess and hazard in business are succeeding one another periodically, and with but brief intervals. The pursuit of property, and that in no moderate amount, has acquired at once, an unprecedented activity and universality. The views, with which multitudes now are entering into business, are not of gaining a subsistence they dis- dain the thought not barely of pursuing a proper and useful calling that it is far beneath their ambition ; but of acquiring a fortune of acquiring ease and independence. In accordance with this view, is the common notion of retiring from business. It is true, that we do not see much of this retiring, but we hear much about it. The passion exists, though the course of business is so rash as constantly to disappoint, or so eager as finally to overcome it. In saying that a great change is passing over the business character of the world, and that it is in some respects dangerous, I do not intend to say, that it is altogether bad, or even, that there is necessarily more evil than good in it. I hold it to be an advantage to the world, that restrictions, like those of the guilds of Germany and the Borough laws in England, are thrown off, and that a greater number of competitors can enter the lists, and run the race for the comforts and luxuries of life. The prizes, too, will be smaller as the competitors are more numerous ; and that, I hold, will be an advantage. I believe, also, that the AND THE PASSION FOR A FORTUNE. 85 system of doing business on credit, in a young and en- terprising country, is, within proper bounds, useful ; and that our own, owes a part of its unexampled growth and prosperity to this cause. I only say, what I think all will admit, that from these causes, there are tendencies in the business of the country which are dangerous. But to return to my statement ; I undertake to say, not only in general, that there are wrong practical tendencies, but that there is a way of thinking about business which is wrong. Your practical advisers may tell you that there has been over-trading, that this is the great evil, and that it must be avoided in future. I do not say, for I do not know, whether this has been the great evil or not ; but this I say, that it probably will not be avoided in future, if it has been the evil. And why not ? Because there is an evil beneath the evil alleged, and that is an excessive de- sire for property, an eagerness for fortune. In other words, there is a wrong way of thinking, which lies like a canker at the root of all wholesome moderation. The veiy idea that property is to be acquired in the course of ten or twenty years, which shall suffice for the rest of life, that by some prosperous traffic or grand speculation, all the labor of life is to be accom- plished in a brief portion of it, that by dexterous man- agement, a large part of the term of human existence is to be exonerated from the laws of industry and self- denial all this way of thinking, I contend, is founded in a mistake of the true nature and design of business, and of the conditions of human well-being. I do not say still to discriminate that it is wrong to desire wealth, and even, with a favorable and safe 8 86 THE USES OF LABOR, opportunity, to seek the rapid accumulation of it. A man may have noble ends to accomplish by such ac- cumulation. He may design to relieve his destitute friends or kindred. He may desire to foster good in- stitutions, and to help good objects. Or, he may wish to retire to some other sphere of usefulness and exer- tion, which shall be more congenial to his taste and affections. But it is a different feeling, it is the desire of accumulation for the sake of securing a life of ease and gratification for the sake of escaping from exer- tion and self-denial this is the wrong way of think- ing which I would point out, and which I maintain to be common. I do not say that it is universal among the seekers of wealth. I do not say that all who pro- pose to retire from business, propose to retire to a life of complete indolence or indulgence ; but I say that many do ; and I am inclined to say, that all propose to themselves an independence, and an exemption from the necessity of exertion, which are not likely to be good for them ; and, moreover, that they wed them- selves to these ideas of independence and exemption, to a degree, that is altogether irrational, unchristian and inconsistent with the highest and noblest views of life. That a man should desire so to provide for him- self, as in case of sickness or disability, not to be a burthen upon his friends or the public, or in case of his death, that his family should not be thus dependent, is most reasonable, proper and wise. But that a man should wear out half of his life in an almost slavish devotion to business, that he should neglect his health, comfort and mind, and waste his very heart, with anxiety, and all to build a castle of indolence in some fairy land this, I hold, to be unwise and wrong. I AND THE PASSION FOR A FORTUNE. 87 am saying nothing now of particular emergencies into which a man may rightly or wrongly have brought himself; I speak only of the general principle. And the principle, I say, in the first place, is un- wiie, wrong, injurious and dangerous, with reference to business itself. It is easy to see that the different views of business, implied in the foregoing remarks, will impart to the whole process a different character. If a man enters upon it as the occupation of his life, if he looks upon it as a useful and honorable course, if he is interested in its moral uses, and, what we de- mand of every high-minded profession, if he thinks more of its uses than of its fruits more of a high and honorable character than of any amount of gains and if, in fine, he is willing to conform to that ordinance of Heaven which has appointed industry, action, effort, to be the spring of improvement, then, of course, he will calmly and patiently address himself to his task, and fulfil it with wisdom and moderation. But if busi- ness is a mere expedient to gain a fortune, a race run for a prize, a game played for a great stake ; then it as naturally follows that there will be eagerness and ab- sorption, hurry and anxiety ; it will be a race for the swift, and a game for the dexterous, and a battle for the strong ; life will be turned into a scene of hazard and strife, and its fortunes will often hang upon the cast of a die. I must add that the danger of all this is greatly in- creased by a circumstance already alluded to ; I mean the rapid expansion of the principle of political free- dom. Perhaps, the first natural development of that principle was to be looked for in the pursuit of pro- perty. Property is the most obvious form of individ- 88 THE USES OF LABOR, ual power, the most immediate and palpable ministra- tion to human ambition. It was natural, when the weights and burthens of old restrictions were taken off, that men should first rush into the career of accumu- lation. I say restrictions; but there' have been re- straints upon the mind, which are, perhaps, yet more worthy of notice. The mass of mankind, in former ages, have ever felt that the high and splendid prizes of life were not for them. They have consented to poverty, or to mediocrity at the utmost, as their inev- itable lot. But a new arena is now spread for them, and they are looking to the high places of society as within their reach. The impulse imparted to private ambition by this possibility, has not, I think, been fully considered, and it cannot, perhaps, be fully calculated. And it should also be brought into the account, that our imperfect civilization has not yet gone beyond the point of awarding a leading, and, perhaps, paramount consideration in society, to mere wealth. Conceive, then, what must be the effect, upon a man in humble and straitened circumstances, of the idea that it is pos- sible for him to rise to this distinction. The thoughts of his youth, perhaps, have been lowly and unaspir- ing : they have belonged to that place which has been assigned him in the old regime of society. But in the rapid progress of that equalizing system which is spreading itself over the world, and amidst the unpre- cedented facilities of modern business, a new idea is suddenly presented to him. As he travels along the dusty road of toil, visions of a palace of splendor, and equipage and state, rise before him ; his may be the most enviable and distinguished lot in the country ; he who is now a slave of the counting-room or coun- AND THE PASSION FOR A FORTUNE. 89 ter, of the work-bench or the carman's stand, may yet be one, to whom the highest in the land shall bow in homage. Conceive, I say, the effect of this new idea upon an individual, and upon a community. It must give an unprecedented and dangerous impulse to soci- ety. It must lead to extraordinary efforts and meas- ures for acquisition. It will have the most natural effect upon the extension of traffic and the employ- ment of credit. It may be expected, that in such cir- cumstances, men will borrow and bargain as they have never done before ; that the lessons of the old prudence will be laid aside ; that the old plodding and pains-taking course will not do for the excited and stimulated spirit of such an age. This eagerness for acquiring fortunes, tends equally to defeat the ultimate, the providential design of busi- ness. That design, I have said, is to train men by action, by labor and care, by the due exertion of their faculties, to mental and moral accomplishment. It is necessary to this end, that business should be con- ducted with regularity, patience and calmness ; that the mind should not be diverted from a fair applica- tion of its powers, by any exaggerated or fanciful esti- mate of the results. Especially, if that contemplation of results involves the idea of escaping from all care and occupation, must it constantly hinder the fulfil- ment of the providential design. The very spirit of business tlien, is the spirit of resistance to that design. But even if it were not, yet it is evident, that neither the mental nor moral faculties of a human being have any fair chance, amidst agitations and anxieties, amidst dazzling hopes and disheartening fears. Cer- tainly, it must be admitted, that a time of excessive 8* 90 THE USES OF LABOR, absorption in business, is any thing but a period of improvement. How many in such seasons have sunk in character, and in all the aims of life have lost their habits of reading and reflection, their habits of medi- tation and prayer ! Business, in its ultimate, its providential design, is a school. Neglected, forgotten, perhaps ridiculed, as this consideration may be, it is the great and solemn truth. Man is placed in this school, as a learner of lessons for eternity. What he shall learn, not what he shall get, is of chief, of eternal import to him. As to property, " it is certain," to use the language of an Apostle, " that as we brought nothing into this world, we can carry nothing out of it." But there is one thing which we shall carry out of it, and that is, the character which we have formed in the very pursuits, by which property has been acquired. In the next place, this passion for rapid accumula- tion, thus pushed to eagerness and vehemence, and liable to be urged to rashness and recklessness, leads to another evil, which to any rational apprehension of things, cannot be accounted small ; and that is the evil of sacrificing in business, the end to the means. " Live while you live," is a maxim which has a good sense as well as a bad one. But the man who is sa- crificing all the proper ends of life, for something to be enjoyed twenty years hence, can scarcely be said to live while he lives. He is not living- now in any sat- isfactory way, he confesses ; he is going to live by and by ; that is, when and where he does not live, and never may live ; nay, where, it is probable, he never will live. For not one man in thirty, of those who in- tend to retire from business, ever does retire. And AND THE PASSION FOR A FORTUNE. 91 yet, how many suffer this dream about retiring, to cheat them out of the substantial ends of acquisition comfort, improvement, happiness, as they go on. How then stands the account ? In seeking property, a man has certain ends in view. Does he gain them ? The lowest of them comfort does he gain that ? No, he will tell you, he has little enough of comfort. That is to come. Having forsaken the path of regular and moderate and sure acquisition in which his fathers walked, he has plunged into an ocean of credit, spread the sails of adventurous speculation, is tossed upon the giddy and uncertain waves of a fluctuating cur- rency, and liable, any day, to be wrecked by the storms that are sweeping over the world of business. The means, the means of ease, of comfort, of luxury he must have ; and yet the things themselves ease, comfort, and the true enjoyment of luxury, are the very things which he constantly fails to reach. He is ever saying, that he must get out of this turmoil of business, and yet he never does get out of it. The very eagerness of the pursuit, not only deprives him of all ease and com- fort as he goes on, but it tends constantly to push the whole system of business to that excess, which brings about certain reaction and disappointment. Were it not better for him to live while he lives to enjoy life as it passes ? Were it not better for him to live richer and die poorer ? Were it not best of all for him to banish from his mind, that erring dream of future in- dolence and indulgence ; and to address himself to the business of life, as the school of his earthly education ; to settle it with himself now, that independence if he gains it, is not to give him exemption from employ- ment ; that in order to be a happy man, he must aU 92 THE USES OE LABOR, ways, with the mind or with the body, or with both, be a laborer ; and, in fine, that the reasonable exer- tion of his powers, bodily and mental, is not to be re- garded as mere drudgery, but as a good discipline, a wise ordination, a training in this primary school of our being, for nobler endeavors, and spheres of higher activity hereafter? For never surely is activity to cease ; and he who proposes to resign half his life to indolent enjoyment, can scarcely be preparing for the boundless range and the intenser life that is to come. But there are higher ends of acquisition than mere comfort. For I suppose, that few seekers of wealth can be found, who do not propose mental culture, and a beneficent use of property, as among their objects. And with a fulfilment of these purposes, a moderate pursuit is perfectly compatible. But how is it, when that pursuit becomes an eager and absorbing strife for fortune ? What is the language of fact and experi- ence ? Amidst such engrossing pursuits, is there any time for reading ? Are any literary habits, or any hab- its of mental culture, formed ? I suppose these ques- tions carry with them their own answer. But the over-busy man, though he is neglecting his mind now, means to repair that error by and by. That is the greatest mistake of all. He will not find the habits he wants, all prepared and ready for him, like that plea- sant mansion of repose to which he is looking. He will find habits there, indeed ; but they will be the hab- its he has been cultivating for twenty years ; not those he has been neglecting, The truth he will then find to be, that he does not love to read or study, that he never did love it, and that he probably never will love it. AND THE IWSMO.N FOR A FORTl \i:. 93 1 do not say thai reading is die only means of men- tal cultivation. Business itself may invigorate, en- large and elevate the mind. But then it must be, be- cause large views are taken of it; because the mind travels beyond the counter and the desk, and studies the geography, politics and social tendencies of the world ; investigates the laws of trade, and the philoso- phy of mechanism, and speculates upon the morals and ends of all business. Nay, and the trader and the craftsman, if he would duly cultivate his mind, must, like the lawyer, physician and clergyman, travel be- yond the province of his own profession, and bring the contributions of every region of thought, to build him- self up in the strength and manhood of his intellectual nature. And therefore, 1 say, with double force of assevera- tion, that he who has pursued business in such a way as to have neglected all just mental culture, has sa- crificed the end to the means. He has gained money, and lost knowledge ; he has gained splendor, and lost accomplishment ; gained tinsel, and lost gold ; gained an estate, and lost an empire gained the world, and lost his soul. And thus it is with all the ends of accumulation. The beneficent use, the moral elevation, which every high-minded man will propose to himself, are sacri- ficed in the eagerness of the pursuit. A man may give, and give liberally ; but this may be a very differ- ent thing from using property beneficently and wisely. I confess, that on this account, I look with exceeding distrust upon all our city charities ; because men have no time to look into the cases and questions that are pre- sented to them ; because they give recklessly, without 94 THE USES OF LABOR, system or concert. I believe that immense streams of charity are annually flowing around us, which tend only to deepen the channels of poverty and misery. He who gives money, to save time, cannot be acting wisely for others ; and he who does good only by agents and almoners, cannot be acting wisely for him- self. And yet, this is the course to which excessive devotion to gain must lead. The man has no time to think for himself; and, therefore, custom must be his law, or his clergyman, perhaps, is his conscience. He is an excellent disciple in the school of implicit submission. He attends a sound divine; he gives bountifully to the missions or to the alms-houses ; he suffers himself to be assessed, perhaps, in the one tenth of his income ; and there end with him all the uses and responsibilities of wealth. His mind is engrossed with acquisition to that extent, that he has no proper regard to the ends of acquisition. Nay more, he comes, per* haps, to that pass in fatuity, that he substitutes alto- gether the means for the end, and embraces his pos- sessions with the insane grasp of the miser. On the whole, and in fine, this passion for a fortune diverts man from his true dignity, his true function which lies in exertion, in labor. I can conceive of reasons, why I might lawfully, and even earnestly desire a fortune. If I could fill some fair palace, itself a work of art, with the produc- tions of lofty genius ; if I could be the friend and help- er of humble worth if I could mark it out, where failing health or adverse fortune pressed it hard, and soften or stay the bitter hours that are hastening it to madness or to the grave ; if I could stand between the oppressor and his prey, and bid the fetter and the AND THE PASSION FOR A FORTUNE. 95 dungeon give up its victim; if I could build up great institutes of learning and academies of art; if I could open fountains of knowledge for the people, and con- duct its streams in the right channels ; if I could do better for the poor than to bestow alms upon them even to think of them, and devise plans for their eleva- tion in knowledge and virtue, instead of for ever open- ing the old reservoirs and resources for their improvi- dence ; if, in fine, wealth could be to me, the handmaid of exertion, facilitating effort and giving success to en- deavor, then might I lawfully, and yet warily and mod- estly, desire it. But if wealth is to do nothing for me but to minister ease and indulgence, and to place my children in the same bad school, I fearlessly say, though it be in face of the world's dread laugh, that I do not see why I should desire it, and that I do not desire it ! Are my reasons asked for this strange decision? Another, in part, shall give them for me. " Two men," says a quaint writer, " two men I honor, and no third. First, the toil-worn craftsman, that with earth-made im- plement laboriously conquers the earth, and makes her man'.s. Venerable to me is the hard hand ; crooked, coarse ; wherein, notwithstanding, lies a cunning vir- tue, indefeasibly royal, as of the sceptre of this plan- et. Venerable, too, is the rugged face, all weather- tanned, besoiled, with its rude intelligence ; for it is the face of a man, living man-like. Oh, but the more venerable for thy rudeness, and even because we must pity as well as love thee ! Hardly-entreated brother ! For us was thy back so bent, for us were thy straight limbs and fingers so deformed. Thou wert our con- script, on whom the lot fell, and fighting our battles, wert so marred. For in thee, too, lay a God-created 96 THE USES OF LABOR* form, but it was not to be unfolded ; encrusted must it stand with the thick adhesions and defacement of la- bor ; and thy body, like thy soul, was not to know freedom. Yet toil on, toil on; thou art in thy duty, be out of it who may ; thou toilest for the altogether indispensable, for daily bread. " A second man I honor, and still more highly ; him who is seen toiling for the spiritually indispensable ; not daily bread, but the bread of life. Is not he, too, in his duty ; endeavoring towards inward harmony ; re- vealing this, by act or by word, through all his out- ward endeavors, be they high or low ? Highest of all, when his outward and his inward endeavor are one ; when we can name him artist ; not earthly craftsman only, but inspired thinker, that with heaven-made im- plement conquers heaven for us ! If the poor and humble toil that we have food, must not the high and glorious toil for him, in return, that he have light and guidance, freedom, immortality ? These two, in all their degrees, I honor ; all else is chaff and dust, which let the wind blow whither it listeth. " Unspeakably touching is it, however, when I find both dignities united ; and he, that must toil outwardly for the lowest of man's wants, is also toiling inwardly for the highest. Sublimer in this world know I noth- ing, than a peasant saint, could such now, any where be met with. Such a one will take thee back to Naz- areth itself; thou wilt see the splendor of heaven spring forth from the humblest depths of earth, like a light shining in great darkness."* And who, I ask, is that third man, that challenges * Thomas Carlyle. AND THE PASSION FOR A FORTUNE. 97 our respect ? Say, that the world were made to be the couch of his repose, and the heavens to curtain it Grant, that the revolving earth were his rolling chariot, and all earth's magnificence were the drapery that hung around his gorgeous rest ; yet could not that au- gust voluptuary let alone the puny idler of our city streets win from a wise man one sentiment of re- spect. What is there glorious in the world, that is not the product of labor, either of the body or of the mind 2 What is history but its record ? What are the treasures of genius and art, but its work ? What are cultivated fields but its toil ? The busy marts, the rising cities, the enriched empires of the world what are they, but the great treasure-houses of labor ? The pyramids of Egypt, the castles and towers and temples of Europe, the buried cities of Mexico what are they but tracks, all round the world, of the mighty footsteps of labor ? Antiquity had not been without it. Without it, there were no memory of the past ; without it, there were no hope for the future. Let then labor, the world's great ordinance, take its proper place in the world. Let idleness too, have the meed that it deserves. Honor, I say be paid, where- ever it is due. Honor, if you please, to unchallenged indolence for that which all the world admires, hath, no doubt, some ground for it honor, then, to undis- turbed, unchallenged indolence for it reposes on treasures that labor some time gained and gathered. It is the effigy of a man, upon a splendid mausoleum somebody built that mausoleum somebody put that dead image there. Honor to him that does nothing, and yet does not starve ; he hath his significance still ; he is a standing proof that somebody has worked. 98 THE USES OP 1ABOR, / mercial morality of this country. \\' I do not mean to charge with personal dereliction any person who has, in times past, taken advantage of this rule. It has been the rule of the country, and has passed unquestioned. And so long as it has been the rule, and money has been borrowed and lent on that principle, and it was considered right so to do, it was perhaps right, as between man and man, that cases of insolvency should be settled on that principle. But as a theoretical principle of general application, I hold, that it is utterly wrong. Our laws indeed disallow it, and public opinion ought not, for another hour, to sus- tain it. The principle is dishonest. It is treachery to the body of a man's creditors. He appeared before them with a certain amount of means ; and upon the strength of those means, they were willing to give him credit. Those means were the implied condition, the very basis of the loan ; without them they would not have made it. They saw that he had a large stock of goods ; that he w r as doing a large business, and they thought there was no danger. They depended, in fact, upon that visible property, in case of difficul- ties. But difficulty arises, failure comes ; and then they find that much or all of that property is preoccu- pied and wrested from their hands, by certain confi- dential pledges. If they had known this, they would have stood aloof, and therefore, I say, that there is essential deception in the case. Again, lending on such a principle loses all its gene- 108 THE MORAL LIMITS OP ACCUMULATION. rosity, and borrowing is liable to lose all the prudence and virtue that properly belong to it. If a man lends to his young friend or relative, on the sole strength of affection and confidence towards him, it is a trans- action which bestows a grace upon mercantile life. But if he lends as a preference creditor, he takes no risk, and shows no confidence. For he knows, that the borrower upon the strength of his loan, can easily get property enough into his hands, to make him perfectly secure. And let it be observed, that in proportion as the acquisition of confidence is less necessary ; in pro- portion, that is to say, as virtue and ability are less necessary to set up a man in business, are they less likely to be cultivated : and so far as this principle goes, therefore, it tends to sap and undermine the whole business character of a country. Nay, it is easy to see, that under the cloak of these confidential transactions, the entire business between the borrower and lender may be the grossest and most iniquitous gambling. Of course, I do not say that this is common. But I say that the principle ought not to be tolerated, which is capable of such abuses. This principle, I think, moreover, is the very key- stone of the arch, that supports many an overgrown fabric of credit. And this observation has a two-fold bearing. Much of the credit that is obtained, could not exist without this principle. That is one thing ; but furthermore, I hold, that all the extension of credit which depends on this principle, ought not to exist at all. It ought not, because the principle is dis- honest and treacherous. And it would not, because the first credit which often puts a man in the possession of visible means, is not given on the strength of con- THE MORAL LIMITS OP ACCUMULATION. 109 fidence in him, but on the strength of the secret pledge; and then the after credits are based on those visible means. Let every man that borrows tell, as he ought to do, the amount of his confidential obliga- tions, and many would find their credit seriously cur- tailed. And to that extent, most assuredly, it ought to be curtailed. I have thus spoken of the spirit of gain as liable not as always being, but as liable to be, in conflict with the great principles of social and commercial justice. I might add, that the manner in which the gains of business are sometimes clung to, amidst the wreck of fortunes, is a powerful and striking illus- tration of the same moral danger. He who regards no limits of justice in acquiring property, will break all bonds of justice to keep it. And here I must carefully and widely distinguish. I give all honor to the spirit which many among us have shown in such circumstances ; to the manly for- titude and disinterestedness of men, who have com- paratively cared nothing for themselves, but who have been almost crushed to the earth by what they have suffered for their friends ; to the heroic cheerfulness and soothing tenderness of woman in such an hour, ready to part with every luxury, and holding the very pearl of her life, in the unsullied integrity of her hus- band. I know full well, that that lofty integrity is the only rule ever thought of by many, in the painful adjust- ment of their broken fortunes. And I know and the public knows, that if they retain a portion of their splendor for a season, it is reluctantly, and because it cannot, in the present circumstances, be profitably dis- posed of and in strict trust for their creditors. But, 10 HO THE MORAL LIMITS OP ACCUMULATION, there are bankrupts of a different character, as you well know. I do not know that any such are in this presence ; but if there were a congregation of such before me, I should speak no otherwise than I shall now speak. I say, that there are men of a different character ; men who intend permanently to keep back a part of the price which they have sworn to pay ; and I tell you, that God's altar, at which I minister, shall hear no word from me, concerning them, but a word of denunciation. It is dishonesty, and it ought to be infamy. It is robbery, though it live in splendor and ride in state ; robbery, I say, as truly as if, instead of inhabiting a palace, it were consigned to the dun- geons of Sing-Sing. And take care, my brethren, as ye shall stand at the judgment-bar of conscience and of God, that ye fall not at all beneath this temptation. The times are times of sore and dreadful peril to the virtue of the country. They are times in which it is necessary, even for honest men, to gird up the loins of their minds, and to be sober and watchful; ay, watchful over themselves. Remember, all such, I ad- jure you, that the dearest fortune you can carry into the world, will not compensate you for the least iota of your integrity surrendered and given up. Oh ! sweeter in the lowliest dwelling to which you may de- scend, shall be the thought that you have kept your integrity immaculate, than all the concentrated essence of luxury to your taste, all its combined softness to your couch, all its gathered splendor to your state. Ay, prouder shall you be in the humblest seat, than if, with ill-kept gains, you sat upon the throne of a kingdom. I come now to consider, in the last place, the limi- tations to be set to the desire of wealth, by a sober THE MORAL LIMITS OF ACCUMULATION. 11 j. consideration of its too probable effects upon ourselves, upon our children, and upon the world at large. And here, let ,me ask two preliminary questions. Can that be so necessary to human well-being, as many consider wealth to be, which necessarily falls to the lot but of a few ? Can that be the very feast and wine of life, when but a few thousands of the human race, are allowed to partake of it ? If it were so. surely God's providence were less kind and liberal, than we are bound to think it. God has not made a world of rich men, but rather a world of poor men ; or of men, at least, who must toil for a subsistence. That then must be the good condition for man ; nay. the best condition ; and we see, indeed, that it is the grand sphere of human improvement. In the next place, can that be so important to human welfare, which, if it were possessed by all, would be the most fatal injury possible ? And here I must desire, that every person whose pursuit of property, this question may effect, will extend his thoughts beyond himself. He may say that it would be a good thing if he could acquire wealth, and perhaps it would. He may say that he does not see that riches would do him any harm, and, perhaps, they would not. He may have views that ennoble the pursuit of for- tune. But the question is; would it be well and safe, for four-fifths of the business community around him to become opulent ? He must remember that his neighbors have sought as well as he, and in a propor- tion, too, not far distant from what I have stated. They have sought, and had as good a right to succeed, as he had. Would it be well that so general an ex- pectation of fortune, should be gratified ? Would it 112 THE MORAL LIMITS OF ACCUMULATION.. be well for society ; well for the world ? Only carry the supposition a little farther ; only suppose the whole world to acquire wealth ; only suppose it were possi- ble that the present generation could lay up a com- plete provision for the next, as some men desire to do for their children ; and you destroy the world at a single blow. All industry would cease with the neces- sity for it ; all improvement would stop with the de- mand for exertion ; the dissipation of fortunes, whose mischiefs are now countervailed by the healthful tone of society, would then breed universal disease, and break out into universal license ; and the world would sink into the grave of its own loathsome vices. But let us look more closely, for a moment, at the general effect of wealth upon individuals and up- on nations. I am obliged, then, to regard with considerable dis- trust, the influence of wealth upon individuals. I know that it is a mere instrument, which may be converted to good or to bad ends. I know that it is often used for good ends. But I more than doubt whether the chances lean that way. Independence and luxury are not likely to be good for any man. Leisure and luxury are almost always bad for every man. I know that there are noble exceptions. But I have seen so much of the evil effect of wealth upon the mind making it proud, haughty and impatient, robbing it of its simplicity, modesty and humility, bereaving it of its large and gentle and considerate humanity; and I have heard such testimonies, such astonishing testimo- nies to the same effect, from those whose professional business it is to settle and adjust the affairs of large estates, that I more and more distrust its boasted ad- THE MORAL LIMITS OF ACCUMULATION. 113 vantages. I deny the validity of that boast. In truth, I am sick of the world's admiration of wealth. Al- most all the noblest things that have been achiev- ed in the world, have been achieved by poor men ; poor scholars and professional men ; poor artisans and artists ; poor philosophers, and poets, and men of genius. It does appear to me, that there is a certain staidness and sobriety, a certain moderation and restraint, a cer- tain pressure of circumstances, that is good for man. His body was not made for luxuries ; it sickens, sinks and dies under them. His mind was not made for indulgence. It grows weak, effeminate and dwarfish, under that condition. It is good for us to bear the yoke ; and it is especially good to bear the yoke in our youth. I am persuaded that many children are injured by too much attention, too much care ; by too many servants at home ; too many lessons at school ; too many indulgences in society. They are not left suffi- ciently to exert their own powers, to invent their own amusements, to make their own way. They are often inefficient and unhappy, they lack ingenuity and ener- gy, because they are taken out of the school of prov- idence ; and placed in one which our own foolish fond- ness and pride have built for them. Wealth, without a law of entail to help it, has always lacked the energy even to keep its own treasures. They drop from its imbecile hand. What an extraordinary revolution in domestic life is that, which, in this respect, is presented to us all over the world ! A man, trained in the school of industry and frugality, acquires a large estate. His children possibly keep it. But the third generation almost inevitably goes down the rolling wheel of for- 10* 114 THE MORAL LIMITS OF ACCUMULATION. tune, and there learns the energy necessary to rise again. And yet we are, almost all of us, anxious to put our children, or to ensure that our grand-children shall be put, on this road to indulgence, luxury, vice, degradation and ruin ! This excessive desire and admiration for wealth, is one of the worst traits in our modern civilization. We are, if I may say so, in an unfortunate dilemma in this matter. Our political civilization has opened the way for multitudes to wealth, and created an insatiable de- sire for it ; but our mental civilization has not gone far enough, to make a right use of it. If wealth were em- ployed in promoting mental culture at home, and works of philanthropy abroad ; if it were multiplying studios of art, and building up institutions of learning around us ; if it were every way raising the intellectual and moral character of the world, there could scarcely be too much of it. But if the utmost aim, effort and am- bition of wealth, be to procure rich furniture, and pro- vide costly entertainments,I am inclined to say, that there could scarcely be too little of it. " It employs the poor," do I hear it said ? Better that it were divi- ded with the poor. Willing enough am I, that it should be in few hands, if they will use it nobly with tem- perate self-restraint and wise philanthropy. But on no other condition, will I admit that it is a good, either for its possessors or for any body else. I do not deny that it may lawfully be, to a certain extent, the minis- ter of elegancies and luxuries, and the handmaid of hospitality and physical enjoyment ; but this I say, that just in such proportion as its tendencies, divested of all higher aims and tastes, are running that way, are they running to evil and to peril. THE MORAL LIMITS OF ACCUMULATION. 115 That peril, moreover, does not attach to individuals and families alone ; but it stands, a fearful beacon, in the experience of cities and empires. The lessons of past times, on this subject, are emphatic and solemn. I undertake to say that the history of wealth, has al- ways been a history of corruption and downfall. The people never existed that could stand the trial. Boundless profusion alas ! for humanity is too little likely to spread for any people, the theatre of manly energy, rigid self-denial, and lofty virtue. Where is the bone and sinew and strength of a coun- try ? Where do you expect to find its loftiest talents and virtues ? Where its martyrs to patriotism or re- ligion ? Where are the men to meet the days of peril and disaster? Do you look for them among the chil- dren of ease and indulgence and luxury ? All history answers. In the great march of the ra- ces of men over the earth, we have always seen opu- lence and luxury sinking before poverty and toil and hardy nurture. It is the very law that has presided over the great processions of empire. Sidon and Tyre, whose merchants possessed the wealth of princes ; Bab- ylon and Palmyra, the seats of Asiatic luxury ; Rome, laden with the spoils of a world, overwhelmed by her own vices more than by the hosts of her enemies all these, and many more, are examples of the de- structive tendencies of immense and unnatural accu- mulation. No lesson in history is so clear, so impres- sive, as this. I trust, indeed, that our modern, our Christian cities and kingdoms are to be saved from such disastrous is- sues. I trust that, by the appropriation of wealth, less to purposes of private gratification, and more to 116 THE MORAL LIMITS OF ACCUMULATION. purposes of Christian philanthropy and public spirit, we are to be saved, But this is the very point on which I insist. Men must become more generous and benevolent, not more selfish and effeminate, as they become more rich, or the history of modern wealth will follow in the sad train of all past examples ; and the storyof American prosperity and of English opu- lence, will be told as a moral, in empires beyond the Rocky Mountains, or in the newly-discovered conti- nents of the Asiatic Seas ! in DISCOURSE V. ON THE NATURAL AND ARTIFICIAL RELATIONS OF SOCIETY. LUKE X, 29. And who is my neighbor? What is society ? And what are the ties that give to society its strength, dignity and beauty ? Let us make the attempt, though it will be dif- ficult, to lay aside all conventional ideas of this sub- ject ; and endeavor to contemplate it in the spirit of generous philosophy, and more beneficent Christianity. What is society, not as man has made it, but in its original elements and just relations? what is it, in the constitution of God ? What did he design that man should be to man, and what the bond between them? The answer is given in words of authority. " Thou shalt love thy neighbor as thyself." It is the bond of kind neighborhood, of gentle affinity, of gracious sym- pathy. And " who is my neighbor ?" Again, the sa- cred text answers. It is the Samaritan, the sinner, the sufferer. It is he who is cast down and trodden under foot. It is he who lies by the way-side, ne- glected and despised. Every man is your neighbor. No matter what is his condition, his clime, his nation. No matter from what country, trodden down with op- 118 ON SOCIETY. pression, he hath come. No matter in what prison- house he hath toiled ; or in what mournful garb, pover- ty or neglect hath clothed him. If he can say, " I am a man," he puts forward a sacred and venerable claim. If he who could say, "lama Roman citizen," could rouse in his behalf the sympathies of a whole mighty people ; he who can say, "lama man," should touch the heart of all mankind. It is the claim of a common nature which God has laid upon us. As strong as the bond of humanity it- self, he has made the common tie. Nay, more ; and dear as are the interests which he has committed to the sacred depository of each human bosom, and power- ful as are the influences which one human being can exert upon another, has he made the obligation of love, pity and humanity to the common welfare. Human- ity! the universal counterpart of each man's self! the multiplication of one's self into millions of suffering or happy beings ! well might the Latin poet say, " I am a man, and nothing is foreign, nothing far from me, that is human." And when a crowded Roman theatre once rose up in admiration of that noble sentiment, it was a homage as fit as it was beautiful. And fitly, from that day to this, has been borne, in the literature and on the bosom of nations, the record of that touch- ing and noble saying. But when I look more deeply into that humanity, and consider what it is, I feel that such a sentiment rises above generosity, and takes the character of sanc- tity and even of sublimity. I see a circle drawn around each human being, which it is not only sin, but sacri- lege, to invade. For what is within that sacred pale that girds about every human heart ? Joy, sorrow ; ON SOCIETY. 119 fear, hope ; need ; the need of happiness, and more saered and awful still the need of virtue ! There, God hath made a being, whom nothing but virtue can suffice ; whom nothing but infinity and eternity will content. I speak not the language of theology, but of fact. So God hath made us. That mighty burthen of a spiritual and divine need rests upon every human heart ; and nothing but the Almighty po^wer that placed it there, can ever relieve it. It is your soul, my friend, that bears this dread charge ; but it is the soul of him, whosoever he be, that standeth next you in the world- ly crowd ; it is every soul in this assembly ; it is every man in the world. Human society is the society of beings so charged and entrusted. And if a congress of kings and potentates shall be thought an imposing spectacle, and to demand the most heedful considera- tion and treatment from one to the other, what shall be the higher law for beings who act for virtue, for heaven and for eternity ! Were it only happiness that is concerned, yet in the mysterious and inexplicable feeling of individuality which we all possess, the veriest outcast by the way- side, has as much at stake, as the monarch on his guarded throne. Poor men and rich men have, indeed, their distinct resorts and reliances ; but there are no such things as a rich man's joy, and a poor man's joy. Happiness hath no respect of persons. It is as dear to one man as to another ; and the feeling that makes it so, is not of man's, but of God's creating. And the sharp visitation of pain, whether it finds its way through the beggar's rags or the prince's cloth of gold, is alike sore and bitter to abide. Suffering is not an accident of our condition, but an ingredient of our being. Dis- 120 ON SOCIETY. ease, whether it knocks at the cottage-wicket or the castle-gate, sends its thrilling summons, in equal disre- gard of haughty grandeur and shrinking penury. The inmates of the one, when revolving, beneath their hum- ble roof, the fortunes of their lives, feel that they have, in their happiness, as much at stake, as the lofty pos- sessors of the other; and in that essential respect, they have as much at stake. To what conclusion, then, do we arrive ? Is it a strange or an unexpected conclusion ? for this it is that without any respect to external condition, one man has just as much right to have his virtue and hap- piness regarded, as another man ! Is there a man here, who can look upon joy or sorrow with indifference, because they are found in a meaner garb than his own ? I will not compromise, for one moment, the principle I maintain. I abhor that man, and I will say it. I abhor him, as worse than a traitor to his country, as a traitor to humanity. And I appeal, for my justifi- cation, to the most ordinary sentiments of every gen- erous mind. Would you make that man your friend, who could take pleasure in wantonly crushing an in- sect ? What will you think, then, of the man, who could coldly disregard, or carelessly wound, the feel- ings of a fellow-creature ? I have not wished to linger upon these preliminary steps; and, therefore, I hasten to observe that we have thus come, by a direct path, to the consideration of social relationships. They are of two kinds, natu- ral and artificial ; and my purpose is, of course, not to go over the whole ground which would require volumes for the survey of it but only to touch upon such points as are particularly pressed upon our no- ON SOCIETY. 121 vice, by the present condition of society. The natural relations of society are such as spring from necessity, and may be considered as ordained by our Creator ; the artificial are those which are devised and regulated by man. Of those which are natural, or necessary to society itself though there are many, such as those of husband and wife, parent and child, guardian and ward, broth- ers and sisters, I shall consider only the single but comprehensive relation of employers and employed ; or, in other words, that of master and apprentice, householder and domestic, rich and poor. These are certainly among the inevitable relations of human be- ings ; and no progress of the w r orld, in civilization or Christianity, may ever be expected to abolish them. Our business with them, then, is not to extirpate but to improve them ; and the questions that arise on this point, are of some delicacy, and need to be touched with a careful hand. I frankly confess myself to be among the number of tliose, who think that the feudal distinctions of former days, the old relations of master and servant, have transmitted to us some errors, which need to be done away ; and which, in this country, must be done away. But, on the contrary, I do not hold at all, with those visionary persons, who expect that all distinctions in society will cease, and that men will stand on the level of perfect equality. Nay more, I maintain, that both necessity and propriety demand that the manners of different classes of society to- wards each other, shall differ. The manner of him who directs, must differ from the manner of hirn who is directed. On the one hand, there must be authori- ty, or direction, if you please so to call it ; and,, on the 11 122 ON SOCIETY. other, acquiescence. The relation, indeed, is volunta- ry ; no man among us is obliged to be the agent, work- man, or domestic of another. But if he is such, then the relation requires that he should yield the acquies- cence in question. And to that acquiescence, I repeat, a certain manner is appropriate : not slavish or obse- quious, but cheerful and courteous. And I especially insist, that neither party is ever to forget the respect and kindness which are due from one human being to another. But this great bond of humanity is, doubtless, often disregarded by both parties. Men strive and wrangle with each other, and are guilty of scorn or spite in their behavior, forgetting what they are forgetting that they are creatures of the same God, children of one common Father. On which side the fault chiefly lies, at the present era of American society, I confess, that I am in doubt. Up to this time, or nearly to this time, I should have confidently said, that it was, where it always has been with the class of employers. Power is ever liable to beget pride, injustice, and a haughty de- meanor. But in a community where the class of the employed has become so independent, as it is in ours ; where the sense of past injuries is rankling in the mind ; where many false maxims tend to make all ap- parent inferiority peculiarly galling, and where the old conventional manners, once considered appropriate to that condition, are breaking up, the consequence is but too likely to be in many, revolt, recklessness, discour- tesy and despite. On which side the greatest courtesy and kindness are to be found, I will not decide ; nor is it necessary in order to urging the duties that belong to both. ON SOCIETY. 123 Let me offer it as a leading observation, that these duties, in this country, have assumed a new character, and a new importance. The relation of employers and employed among us is new. The workman here does not come to his employer, bowing and cringing for service, as the only thing that can keep him from starving. He stands before the great and powerful contractor or merchant, on a footing of compara- tive independence of such independence, at least, as was never before known in any country. His labor is in request ; if one man does not w r ant it, another does. He is not obliged to sell it on such terms, a.s often grind to the dust, the artisan of Birmingham and Manchester, or the lazzaroni of Naples, or the palan- kin-bearer of Calcutta. This state of things, indeed, suggests some admonitions to the laboring classes, which I shall not fail to address to them. But at the same time, it imposes on employers some things, which I shall ask them to do more than submit to, as a matter of necessity. It calls them to consider and respect, more than employers have ever before done, the great claims of a common humanity. I protest, then, against all overbearing haughtiness, and every thing that indicates a want of respect and kindness, on the part of the employer. I do not say how common this treatment of the poor man is. I do not say, that there are ten men in this assembly who are guilty of it. But if there is one, then, I say, that upon that case, I lay the heaviest weight of moral re- probation. I plead the great cause of humanity. I tell you that he who stands before you with a coarse garb and sweaty brow, is yet a man ; and that he is to be regarded and felt for as a man. Must I resort to 124 ON SOCIETY. the very alphabet of Christianity, to teach you what is due to him ? Must I remind you, that " God hath made of one blood all nations of men to dwell on the face of the earth ?" Must I tell you, that " God hath made the poor of this world rich in faith, and heirs of a kingdom," amidst whose splendors all the appendages of your condition are but perishing bawbles ? Must I tell you, that the man, whom you are liable in your power to treat with injustice or indignity, may be a nobler man than you ; dearer to God, and more wor- thy of all true respect than you are ? Must I say in so many words, that he has feelings, as keen and sen- sitive, it may be, as your own ? Must I say, that all the touching and venerable claims of humanity are stamped upon him as well as upon you that wife and children and home, happiness and hope and heaven, are as dear to him as to you 1 What right have you, and where did you find it, to treat him any otherwise than as a brother man I You are, indeed, to give di- rections, and he is to follow them. But that is a sim- ple compact between you, and does not compromise the respectability of either. And beyond that, I say, that there is no law of substantial courtesy and kindness which is not to be observed between you. It is true, that men whose hands and eyes are occupied with strenuous toil or business, cannot be engaged with making bows to each other ; and this is not what I in- sist upon. But I would make the laborer understand, that I respect him according to his merits, as truly as I respect the gentleman ; and I would make the gen- tleman, who had no merits, understand, that I respect the honest and worthy laborer a thousand times more. What ! shall I bring down the principles of eternal ON SOCIETY 125 truth and justice, so low, that they may be buried in the plaited folds of a rich man's garment ? Truth and justice forbid ! Worth is worth ; and no garb, before my eyes, shall ever clothe meanness witli honor, or sink virtue to contempt. We are all possessed, it is probable, with conven- tional notions on this subject, which expose us to do considerable injustice. Man looketh on the outward appearance. But, I hold, that he who does not strive in favor of principle and humanity, to correct the mis- takes of worldly sense and fashion, is no noble or Christian man. And I say, too, that he who would assume all the airs of unfeeling superiority, which the spirit of society will tolerate, is either inexcusably thoughtless, or detestably unprincipled, and is just fit to be an oppressor in Russia, a tyrant in Constantinople, if not a man-stealer in Africa. And, I maintain, more- over, that Christianity itself has made but little pro- gress, where this care and consideration for our kind are not cherished. Vainly will you try to reconcile any man's claims to Christian virtue, with harshness and insolence to his dependants. He may go from the very worship of God to this scorn and despite of man it avails not. The spirit of Christ is the spirit of philanthropy. " He who loveth not his brother whom he hath seen ; how doth he love God whom he hath not seen !" Nor is it enough to refrain from oppression and in- solence. There are duties belonging to the relation of the employer. He is bound to feel an interest in his dependants, beyond that of obtaining their services. This interest he takes in his horse or his ox. This is not enough, to be felt for a human being. The man 11* 126 ON SOCIETY. who labors in your garden, or in your warehouse, or your manufactory, is not to be looked upon as a mere machine that is accomplishing so much work, and af- ter it is done, to be dismissed without a further thought. You ought to think kindly of that man, and to consid- er how you can, as a fellow-being, act towards him a brotherly part. You may find ways enough of doing this, without going oat of your sphere, and without being officious, or ostentatious, or offensively patron- ising in your kindness. Your very manners, inspiring in those who labor for you, good will, cheerfulness and self-respect, may do much. Yes, your very manners may do more for their happiness and virtue, than if you doubled their wages, or gave them the most liberal presents. You may also speak kindly to them, of thoir welfare and of their families. You may become their adviser and friend. You may induce them to deposit a portion of their earnings in a savings' bank ; and that money, so laid up and gradually accumulating, will be one of the best securities for their growing virtue and courage and self-respect. You may sometimes give them an interesting book to read at least, during the leisure of Sunday, if they have no other time and it will be a means both of safety and improvement on that holy day. You may make them feel that they have, in you and in your family, those who know them and take a friendly interest in their respectability and good conduct ; and they might be made to know, that if you should some day go home to your splendid dwelling, and say, that such or such an one had been, that day, intoxicated, or a brawler in the streets, it would spread a sadness over the face of that bright and happy circle. Your children might sometimes go ON SOCIETY. 127 t<> their children in sickness or in trouble, and kindly take them by the hand. No fear, that the hand, nur- tured and softened in the bosom gf luxury, would be soiled by that contact. There is a work of our great- est sculptor,* which represents a child-angel as con- ducting another child to heaven. Were it not a beau- tiful vision, realized into life ? Oh ! when I think what rich families might do for poor families, what min- istering angels they might be, to raise up the low and the fallen, to comfort, to virtue and to heaven, my heart swells at the contemplation ; and I say, when, sfiall the vision be realized into life ? Yet, let us not despair. There are things already done in our noble city, which forbid despair. I say, our noble city ; and when I say this, I am not thinking of our splendid dwellings, of our wealth pouring in through a thousand channels, of our commerce spread- ing the sounding banners of its prosperous march over every sea, nor of that mighty repairing of our desola- tions, which the last year has witnessed ; but I am thinking of the works of mercy that are done in this city. It is a fact, and I must state it with some for- mality, because to most persons it will be new and as- tonishing, that there is scarcely a poor family in our city, which is not regularly visited, by some Sunday- school teacher, or tract distributor, or minister at large, with a view to its moral enlightening and renovation. God bless and prosper the noble band, who have thus gone forth into our waste places ! they are young men, many of them, rising into life, with their own cares and affairs to attend to ; they are young women, * Greenough. 128 ON SOCIETY. some of them of our wealthiest families, and others, who depend upon the labors of their needle for their subsistence ; noble missionaries of mercy ! fair sisters of charity ! again, I bid them God speed ! I bless them for my own sake, and for your sake and in the name of Christ. When I came to this city, a little more than two years ago, I confess, that the mighty mass of what seemed to me its desperate wickedness and misery, weighed upon my mind as a heavy bur- then. It was a professional feeling, if you please so to consider it ; my office called me to look upon the moral interests of men ; and I almost shrunk from a residence in the presence of evils so stupendous, and, as I thought, so incapable of any but the most distant relief. But within two years, I have learned that the dread wastes which stretched out before me, in dark- ness and silence, are filled with benevolent action ; that their long-neglected thresholds are tracked thickly over with footsteps of mercy, and their desolate walls are echoing the voices of Christian truth and love. Let the good work be deepened in any proportion to its extent ; and this city will present the long-desired example, of a great commercial emporium, purified by the beneficent instrumentality of its own prosperous inhabitants. But to return ; there is another sphere for female talent and virtue which I wish to point out ; and that is beneath the domestic roof. I say talent ; for to re- gulate a family of domestics in this country, is really an acheivement of intellect as well as of virtue. The dif- ficulties springing from the state of domestic service among us, T need not dwell upon. They are well known. They are, in fact, the great palpable diiiicul-. ON SOCIETY. I2& dcs of domestic life throughout the country. The real difficulties, indeed, are not those which are palpable ; they lie deeper ; they lie in the mind ; and it is to the removal of these, that I would solicit your attention. And let it be considered that the difficulties of the case, so far as they lie in the situation of the parties, cannot be removed ; and that if any relief is to be found, it must be found in the mind. The relation of house- holders and domestics, in this country, is new. The latter are not dependant on the former, as they are in other countries. They have not the same interest to satisfy you. They have not the same anxiety to keep their place, as if the alternative were penury or star- vation : and I trust they never will have. Whether you are satisfied, is not the only question. If they are not satisfied too, they may retire from your service, and readily find employment elsewhere. What then, amidst all the difficulties of this situation is to be done ? Perpetual changes in a domestic establishment ; no security against its being half broken up almost any day ; no necessity, on the part of those who tempora- rily compose it, of holding their place longer than the caprice or the whim of the moment may dictate ; no bond of necessity for their good behavior, like that which presses upon every other occupation, since they do not look upon their station as a permanent one, nor feel that they are taking a character to live and die by they are looking to better their condition, to estab- lish themselves in life, to pursue an independent course -all these things, I say, occasion immense inconveni- ence, and the severest trials of temper. What then* is to give us relief? I say plainly and firmly, that I do not regret this independence of the class of domes- 130 ON SOCIETY. tics. I am glad that they can look to separate and per- manent establishments. It is a fortunate condition for them. But even if it were not, it is theirs beyond re- covery; and, therefore, the only relief must come through a consideration towards them, hitherto un- known in the world a consideration respectful, wise, Christian-like and kind. And here is the field for fe- male talent and virtue, to which I have already re- ferred. She who has the immediate charge of a fam- ily, should make her assistants feel from the first, that she does not wish to regard them as hirelings, but as faithful friends. Jf, hardened by custom, or puffed up with pride, or absorbed in fashion, she never thinks ot them but to exact from them their tasks, she must not wonder, if they never think of her but to earn the price of those tasks. Committed to her care, subjected in a measure to her influence, as fellow-beings, she is bound to respect, cherish and love them. She ought to study their character, to consider their situation, wants and feelings, to promote the improvement of their minds and hearts, to provide for their grat- ification and entertainment, to make them cheerful and happy if possible, to make them feel that her interest is common with theirs, and, in fine, to treat them, as she might reasonably wish to be treated in change of circumstances. Will you tell me that when all this is done, many of them will prove extremely un- grateful ? I must be allowed to doubt, when such is the result, whether all this is done. That is the very point to be reached ; the removal of that ingratitude ; the removal of that soured and irritated feeling, that often settles at the bottom of the heart, even when there is the effervescence of many kind emotions on ON SOCIETY. 131 the surface. And it is not to be forgotten, that there are grievances too, in the condition of the employed, which furnish some ground for this irritated feeling. Those who listen to me, may imagine that all the com- plaint, since they hear no other, is on one side. What incessant trials, you say, there are with servants ! But I can tell you of places where all the complaint is on the other side of departments in the domestic estab- lishment, where all the confidential communings toge- ther, are filled with complaints of the master or mis- tress, or of their children. This is a case, in short, where there are faults on both sides. And this is the impression, in fine, which I wish to make on the heads of families. I know that there are families where all is going on kindly and quietly, and I think that the number of such is increas- ing. But where it is not, I would admonish you against the injustice of supposing that all is right on your part. It was Pestalozzi, I think, who had the generosity to say, when his pupils did not learn, that the fault was his own ; and this, doubtless, as a general maxim, is partly true. And this, without doubt, if not equally, is, in a measure, true of the masters of families, who fail in their office. If they" would generously admit this, instead of constantly complaining of their difficul- ties, they would be prepared resolutely to address themselves to the task of working out that great reform in domestic manners and morals, which the very con- stitution of society among us demands. The general, who cannot command men ; the contractor or over- seer, who is always vexed by the insubordination and insolence of his workmen, is usually reputed to be guilty of some fault or deficiency on his part. And 132 ON SOCIETY. this, I think, must be accounted equally true of the heads of a family who fail in like manner. I will only add, that the mighty power which controls all human beings, whether in the camp, the manufactory, or the workshop, is judicious kindness ; and that this must be the controlling power in all well-ordered and happy families. Let me now say one word to the class of the em- ployed ; and especially, of domestics. Why should it be thought a hardship or a degradation, to minister to the comfort and happiness of our fellow-beings ? It is the high office, the noble bond of humanity to assist* to serve one another. It appears to me, that I could take a sincere pleasure in ministering to the daily and hourly satisfactions of any one, with whom circum- stances had for a time connected me ; in smoothing his path for him ; in relieving him from annoyances and vexations ; in facilitating his business, his studies, or his enjoyments. What an affection, in this domestic relation, what a true friendship might one win from another, never to end but with life ? And what a hap- piness would this be to carry away from a family, ra- ther than to retire in anger, and to have one's retire- ment felt as a relief! I say, that it is no disgrace to give this domestic as- sistance. It is not slavery ; it is a respectable compact, which one finds it expedient to make with another. And the only real disgrace is in being unfaithful to the terms of that compact. We are made to serve one another. We are all servants. The man who stands in his warehouse or behind his counter, and sells goods to another, is his servant for the time. The lawyer is the servant of his clients, the physician of his patients, ON SOCIETY. 133 and the clergyman of his people. The highest in the land is only so much more, the servant of all. The domestic but stands in one of the many rela- tions of service ; one that is alike ordained of Heaven, and which, therefore, cannot be intrinsically dishonor- able. He is apt, I know, to imagine that the distinc- tions which are made between him and his employers, the different situations and apartments which he occu- pies, his separation from them in the offices of life, in conversation, amusements, meals, &c, imply some discredit. But all this, let him observe, is necessary to the general comfort, and to his .own comfort. If any ten persons were to unite to form a domestic es- tablishment, they would find the very distinctions now complained of, to be inevitable. Some must give di- rections, and others must follow them. Some must provide entertainments, and others must give them. Some must prepare and serve dinner, and others must partake of it. These conditions cannot be blended, without absolute confusion and discomfort. All that could be demanded in the case supposed, would be a rotation of these offices. But can this be fairly de- manded in actual life ? Can it be expected, that he who has built a house, and furnished it, and who pays all its expenses, should not occupy the highest situation in it ? I might as well demand that my neighbor, who lives at the next door, should not occupy a grander house than mine, should not have a more splendid equipage, or keep a more luxurious table. Nay, many domestics live in more style, dress better, and feed more daintily, than multitudes of the poor, who live in their own dwellings. And those poor might as well demand, that those above them, should not be better 12 134 ON SOCIETY. off than they are. In short, the feeling that would re- sist the conditions of domestic service, could not stop till it levelled all human conditions to literal equality. The rich man must part with his riches, the industri- ous with his gains, the advanced in life with the ac- quisitions of many years, that he may share his advan- tages with the young, the negligent, or the poor. It appears to me, that any sensible young man or woman entering into life, may easily comprehend this argument. And if he does, let him patiently and cheer- fully address himself to his task, as appointed to him by Providence. Let him endeavor so to discharge it, that the result in him shall be, not an irritated temper, a soured mind, an unfaithfnl practice, but that gentle- ness, kindness and fidelity, that shall raise him above all human distinctions. I must turn now to a consideration, more brief in- deed, of the artificial relations of society ; and here, too, I shall confine myself to a single point to the re- lations created in society by fashion. They are artifi- cial, inasmuch as they are not founded on merit or mental culture, or even on wealth ; nor are they re- quired by the necessities of society. They are the or- dinances not of nature, but of caprice, pride and am- bition. They do not depend on different modes of living; because in this country, at least, the same con- veniences, comforts and elegances, substantially, are found in different circles ; and we have no idle class. They seem to depend more than upon any thing else, upon the determination of those who consider them- selves as above, to keep down, and to keep out, those who are below. That refinement should shrink from vulgarity, and intelligence from ignorance, and sense ON SOCIETY. 135 from folly, I can understand, and understand to be reasonable ; but whether these are the terms on which the fashionable classes, of this or any other country, stand towards the rest of the world, I leave you to judge. I confess, that to me, fashion seems to stand upon a much coarser and more worldly estimate of things than this. It is difficult, I allow, to assign any law to its ca- price. But that which appears to me to go far- ther than any thing else, to explain its movements, changes and vagaries, is the desire to escape from the (so called) vulgar multitude. The silly multitude strives hard to keep up with fashion, in dress, equi- page, etiquette and modes of living; but the moment it comes in sight, that Proteus thing changes its form. The multitude ,comes up, and finds nothing but a taw- dry and forsaken image. The spirit of fashion has taken another form. Wealth is the most favorite hand- maid of fashion, as enabling it to make the most fre- quent and splendid changes, and as being itself, indeed, the distinction but of a few. If wealth could purchase the exclusive privilege of wearing coarse apparel, it would, doubtless, avail itself of the distinction. We see opulent fashion, indeed, in its fantasies as it would seem, but really on principle, sometimes putting on coarse garments, for the sake of a day's singularity. This passion has lead its votaries, in the great cities of Europe, to resort to a device, which there seems to be some disposition among ourselves, absurdly enough, to copy ; and that is the notable device of turning night into day. There the multitude cannot follow. Busi- ness must be done in the day-time. The idle and luxu- rious classes of Europe, have, therefore, found at last, 136 ON SOCIETY. a world for themselves. They have surrounded them- selves with a wall of darkness ; and they strive within it, to make a day of their own, which God has not made. But this violation of the laws of nature, exacts of them sharp penalties. Disease lurks in the splendid purlieus of fashionable indulgence ; and the dews of night penetrate their frames with aches and pains, that pay dear for hours of unnatural dissipation and ex- cess. But that in a country which has no idle class, where all must do business, and where, too, the earlier hours of eating, leave the body exhausted at late even- ing, and so demanding stimulants to support it that in such a country and under such circumstances, this absurd practice should be gaining ground, is a striking proof to what lengths the folly of fashionable imitation will go. It is on this account that I protest against the spirit of fashion. The spirit of fashion I say; for I am less concerned with its particular arrangements. And when I speak of its spirit, let me not be understood to ascribe it to all the members of this class. I have lived too long to judge men by classes. I am far enough from saying, that all who belong to this class- in particular, are heartless and insincere, or exclusive and proud. I am happy to know that the contrary is the fact. But there is a spirit that is properly denominated the spirit of fashion. It is a spirit of exclusion. It is a spirit that wars against the great claims of humanity. It is a spirit that is haughty, cold and unkind, to those who are deemed inferior. It does not regard their rights, interests and feelings. It forgets that they are men. ON SOCIETY. 137 It is on this account, on account of its essential in- humanity, that I regard that exclusiveness, which fash- ion has introduced, not into one circle only, but into the entire mass of society, as worthy of the severest reprehension. And when I say this exclusiveness, I do not speak of any particular rules of exclusion. Distinctions there must be, certainly ; different circles, doubtless. Intimacies are to be forced upon no man. Every man has a right to accept such associates as he chooses. It is not of the particular arrangements of society that I now speak, but of its general spirit, of the unchristian exclusion and scorn that prevail in it. And it is not purse-proud ignorance, or vulgar assump- tion alone, that is liable to this charge. It is not those only, who treat those, reputed to be beneath them, with contempt, or speak to them in the tones of harsh authority. There are many, who have too much good breeding and good sense, to assume these rude man- ners, yet in whom the feeling of exclusion and superi- ority, is just as strong. The veil of courtesy, that is thrown over the feeling, does not at all diminish its power. The claim to notice, from such persons, is some dis- tinction. It may be talent, it may be wealth, but it is, above all, the opinion of others ; it is eclat in the eyes of the world it is, especially, belonging to a certain class in society. There is an instinctive shrinking, as if from contagion, from all but this. There is a cer- tain distinction, then ; there is a charmed circle, with- in which the social exclusionist entrenches himself, and that circle is surrounded as with an electric chain, which sends quick and thrilling sensibility through ev- ery part. But touch an individual in that circle but 12* 138 ON SOCIETY. mention his name, and the man or the woman we are speaking of, feels it instantly ; attention is on the alert ; the ear is opened to every word ; there is the utmost desire to know, or to seem to know, the individual in question ; there is an eagerness to talk about him, a lively interest in all that concerns him. Is he sick, or is he well ? is he in this place, or in that place ? the most ordinary circumstances rise to great importance, the moment they are connected with him. But, now, do you speak of a person out of that circle be it of fashion, or birth, or wealth, or talent, or be it a circle composed of some or all of these ; and suddenly the social exclusionist has passed through a total metamor- phosis. He says not a word, perhaps : he settles the matter more briefly, and at less expense. His manner speaks. There is an absolute, an wraspeakable indiffer- ence. He knows nothing about persons of that class, who, alas ! have nothing in this world to make them interesting, but their mind and heart. And if you speak of such one, he opens his eyes upon you, as if he scarcely comprehended what part of the creation you are talking about. And when he is made, at length, to recognize a thing so unimportant, as the concerns of a fellow-being, held to be inferior, you find that he is included with a multitude of others, under the sum- mary phrase of " those people," or, " that sort of peo- ple ;" and with such, you would find that he scarcely more acknowledges the tie of a common nature, than with the actually inferior beings of the animal creation. This feeling of selfish and proud exclusion is confin- ed to no one class. I wish we could say, that it is lim- ited to any one grade of character. I wish we could say, that it did not infect the minds of many persons, ON SOCIETY. 139 otherwise, of great merit and worth. I wish we could say, that any one is exempt from it. Living, growing up, as we all have been, in a selfish world, educated, more or less, by worldly maxims, we have none of us, perhaps, felt as we ought, the sacred claim of human nature felt our minds thrill to its touch, as to an electric chain felt ourselves bound with the bands of holy human sympathy felt that all human thought, desire, want, weakness, hope, joy and grief, were our own ours to commune with and to partake of. Few have felt this ; for it is always the attribute of the holiest philanthropy, or of the loftiest genius. Of the loftiest genius, I repeat ; for I venture to say, that all such genius has ever been distinguished by its earnest sympathy and sacred interest in all human feeling. And why should we not feel it ? The very dog, that goes and lies down and dies upon the grave of his master, will almost draw a tear from us, so near does he approach to human affection. And when the war-horse, that has carried his rider through many battles, bows his neck, and thrills through his whole frame, at the approach and touch of that master's hand, we feel something more than respect, towards the noble animal. Oh ! sacred humanity ! how art thou dishonored by thy children, when the merest ap- pendage of thy condition, the mere brute companion of thy fortunes, is more regarded than thou ! What a picture does human society present to us ! If I were to represent the world in vision, I should say that I see it, not as that interchange of hill and dale which now spreads around me, but as one vast mountain ; and all the multitudes that cover it, are struggling to rise ; and those who, in my vision, seem 140 ON SOCIETY. to be above, instead of holding friendly intercourse with those who are below, are endeavoring, all the while to look over them, or building barriers and fen- ces to keep them down ; and every lower grade is us- ing the same treatment towards those who are beneath them, that they bitterly and scornfully complain of, in those who are above ; all but the topmost circle, imitators as well as competitors, injuring as well as in- jured ; and the topmost circle with no more to gain, revelling or sleeping upon its perilous heights, or dizzy with its elevation soon falls from its pinnacle of pride, giving place to others, who share in constant succes- sion the same fate. Such is the miserable struggle of social ambition all the world over. And every thing, I had almost said, is helping it on: every thing, but the loftiest I say not common every thing but the loftiest intellect, like that of Milton, or of Shakspeare ; every thing but simple and holy religion, like that of the Gospel but that religion which came to bless the poor, and the broken in fortune, and the bruised in heart. These holier influences, alas ! have as yet been comparatively but little felt. All else, I repeat, has helped on the evil strife institutions, maxims, pas- sions, the tone of education, the spirit of society ; nay, even history, poetry, romance ; the entire body of our literature has been prostituted to the unholy work. The image of human pride has been set up, like the abomination of desolation spoken of by the prophet, in the holy place ; it has stood where it ought not in the holy places of human nature ; it has removed the al- tar where men ought to worship ; it has overshadow- ed the paths of society ; it has blighted the fruits of honest and ingenuous virtue ; it has crushed many ON SOCIETY. 1 1 1 of the noblest and most generous affections of the human heart. It is time that wise and good men, men who can afford to rest on their intrinsic dignity and worth, who, in imitation of the holy Master, are above the fear of being confounded with the mean and base, but not above the blessed labor of doing good to all, as they have opportunity it is time that Christians, especially, the followers of the meek and lowly Jesus, should see this subject in a new light. We talk about " ordinary people ;" and this phrase, you will often hear pronounced in a tone the most self-sufficient and disdainful. Now, I shall venture to say, that in a most material, in the most material respect, nobody is ordi- nary. Human nature is not an ordinary thing. That nature which is capable of knowledge, which can rise to heavenly virtue, which is destined to immortality, is not an ordinary thing, to be trampled down with a hasty footstep, or to be passed by with a tone or phrase of compendious scorn. There is many a work of humdn hands, that we should not treat in this manner. There are names of ancient genius, which bring a glow into the cheek, as we mention them. And if the work of such an one was before us if we saw the most common statue or monument that had come from the chisel of Phidias, or a faded cartoon from the pencil of Raphael, we should not contemptuously pronounce it an H ordinary thing." If we used this phrase at all, we should do it with a care and con- sideration, conveying the highest compliment. And are less care and consideration to be used, when we are speaking of the u offspring," the work, '< the very image" of our Creator ? I would not fastidiously re- 142 ON SOCIETY. strict the freedom of colloquial language. But I do think it a serious question, whether any language, im- plying scorn of our fellow-beings, should be used with- out extreme caution and discrimination, and without a feeling of evident pity and regret, that a being so nobly gifted, should so degrade himself. The meanest knave, the basest profligate, the reeling drunkard what a picture does he present of a glorious nature in ruins ! Let a tear fall, as he passes. Let us blame and abhor, if we must, but let us reverence and pity still. What hopes are cast down ! what powers are wasted ! what means, what indefinite possibilities of improvement are turned into gloomy disappointment ! what is the man, and what might he be ! The very body, with its fine organization, with its wonderful workmanship, groans and sickens when it is made the instrument of base indulgence ! The spirit sighs, in its secret places, over its meanness, its treachery and dishonor ! There is a nobler mind, in the degra- ded body, that retires within itself, and will not look through the dimmed eye, and will not shine in the bloated and stolid countenance : there is a holier con- science, that will not strengthen the arm that is stretched out to defraud but sometimes makes that arm tremble with its paralyzing touch, and sometimes shakes, as with thunder, the whole soul of the guilty transgressor ! But it is not so extreme a case, that comes within the range of ordinary and practical consideration. You are surrounded with a mass of fellow-beings, most of whom have not lost the common and natural claims to respect. You have a wrong and unworthy pride (let him that heareth, understand let him that ON SOCIETY. 143 to whom this belongs, receive it I say not to whom but I say without much fear of misapplication) you have a wrong and unworthy pride, which leads you to pass by your inferiors, as you consider them, with cold neglect or slight, or to bestow upon them those patronizing airs, that are more difficult to bear. And I say that you degrade not others, so much as you degrade yourself, by these manners. You show a mind bound up in worse than spiritual pride ; that says, " stand by thyself, for I am not holier ; that were indeed a claim to respect, could it be sustained but I am more fashionable than thou." You show that your mind has not been in the noblest school. The celebrated Walter Scott has somewhere ob- served, in his popular works, that, in an ordinary ride in a stage-coach, he never found a man so dull, as not to communicate to him if a free conversation were opened something, which he would have been very sorry not to have heard. It was a noble observation ; and the practice which it implied, no doubt, contrib- uted much to that deep knowledge of human nature, for which this great author is so much distinguished. But it is not as a fine sentiment, or as a useful maxim, that I urge this mutual respect. I say it is a duty. I will listen to no language of haughty preten- sion, or fastidious taste, or over-refined doubt ; I say it is a duty. I say it is a duty, most especially bind- ing on all Christians ; yes, binding upon all who make any pretensions to a belief in the religion of Jesus Christ. And remember, too, my brethren, that it is a duty which will one day be felt, which will enforce con- viction through sanctions more commanding, through a judgment more awful, than that of the sages, or the 144 ON SOCIETY. preachers of this world. There is an hour coming, when all worldly distinctions shall vanish away ; when splendid sin, with all its pride, shall sink prostrate and cowering before the eye of the eternal Judge ; when the modest merit that it could not look upon here, nay, when the virtuous poverty- that was spurned from its gate, shall wear a crown of honor ; when Dives shall lift up his eyes being in torment, and Lazarus shall be borne in Abraham's bosom to the presence of the angels of God ; when the great gulf which shall sepa- rate men from one another, shall separate not between outward splendor and meanness, but between inward, spiritual, essential purity and pollution. Let the judg- ment of that hour be our judgment now. That which will be true there, is true here is true now. Let that severe and solemn discrimination find its way into this world. For it is written, " He that exalteth him- self shall be humbled, and he that humbleth himself, shall be exalted." 145 DISCOURSE VI. ON THE MORAL EVILS TO WHICH AMERICAN SOCIETY IS EXPOSED. ACTS XVII. 27. And hath made of one blood all nations OF MEN, TO DWELL ON ALL THE FACE OF THE EARTH. TnE principle of equality here stated, lies at the foundation of our political institutions. It is the first and main principle in our celebrated declaration of Independence. I have heard some flippant disputers maintain, that that declaration is false ; because (they say) men are, in fact, not " born equal." As if it could have been intended to assert, that all men are born with equal wit or wealth, or of equal strength or stature. The equality which we contend for in this country is an equality, not of powers, but of rights. It is an equality before the law. But this qualification being made, our assertion of the doctrine of equality, is strong and emphatic. That which I have said in a former discourse is, in fact, a part of our political creed " that, without any re- spect to external condition, one man has as much right to have his virtue and happiness regarded as another." The feeling which every human being en- tertains, that he has, in his welfare, as dear an interest 13 146 MORAL EXPOSURES at stake, as any other man, is here perfectly respected* No man among us is allowed to say to any one of his fellow-citizens, "you are of a meaner class, and it matters little what becomes of you ; you may be trod- den under foot with impunity." The law spreads its protecting shield over the weakest and humblest man in the community, and it says to the highest and the haughtiest, " thou shalt not touch a hair of his head, but by the judgment of his peers." But the leading feature of our political condition is, that this law is ordained by the majority of the people. The law allows a certain freedom, and it imposes cer- tain restrictions ; but it is the majority that determines the extent of the one, and the limit of the other. This, I say, is the peculiar feature of our political condition. While, in most other countries, these points are deter- mined by prescriptive usages, or by irresponsible orders of men, it is here left to the whole body of the people. This state of things, of course, raises every indivi- dual in society to power and importance. Meanwhile, the collective body has already swept from its path, all permanent, hereditary distinctions. It has opened to merit a iree course, by which it may rise to the highest places in society and government. This principle of equality, thus obviously fitted to produce a direct and powerful effect on society, lends extraordinary force to another power of equal import- ance, in its bearing on our social character ; and that is the power of public opinion. Public opinion, in this country, is the aggregate of universal opinion. It is not the opinion of the rich and fashionable, nor of princes and nobles ; it is the opinion of every body. OF AMERICAN SOCIETY. 147 It is the opinion of every body, and it affects every body. It is like suffrage, universal, and awarding all distinction. It is like the atmosphere ; it presses every man, and on every side. And what is especially worthy of consideration like the atmosphere, it leaves men unconscious of its power. You move your hand easily and freely in the air, though philosophers tell you, that the weight of the air is equal to fifteen pounds upon every square inch of it. Let a vacuum be made on one side of you, and that invisible force, of which you are so insensible, would hurl you to the earth as with a thunderbolt. It seldoms happens, in- deed, that a man is so circumstanced with regard to public opinion; and there is, too, a moral power which, against all opinion, can stand firm ; " faithful found amidst the faithless." There is such a power ; but few men are conscious on how many lesser occa- sions it is necessary to exert it ; how liable they are to be, not crushed indeed, but swayed from their in- tegrity and independence, by those potent influences, assent and dissent, praise and dispraise, flattery and ridicule ; and above all, by the breath of the bound- less multitude the mighty atmosphere of opinion that surrounds us. The effect of every thing that is uni- versal, is, in like manner, apt to be unperceived ; and I think it the more important, therefore, to point out some of those dangers to our social character, which arise both from our equality, and from that public opinion to which it gives an almost despotic power. I. And the first danger which I shall notice, and this arises particularly from our equality, is that of cold- ness and reserve in our manners. I may observe here, in entering upon these details, 148 MORAL EXPOStRES that our exposures in the respects which I shall mention* are only such as appertain to human nature in such circumstances. Thus, with regard to this trait of re- serve, I shall venture to lay it down as an unquestion- able fact, that the progress of nations towards equali- ty, has always been marked by it. England has long been the freest country in Europe. Its manners are proverbial for their reserve. I do not deny that there are other causes for this, but I have no doubt that the rise of the lower classes in the scale of society, is one. Nay, and it is observable that with the more rapid steps of reform, this reserve has been more rapidly gaining upon the English character. It is remarked, that the higher classes are more and more withdraw- ing themselves from the amusements and sports of the common people. A writer* on the manners and customs of Spain, fifteen years ago, has, unintentionally, given a very striking illustration of the general position, on which I am insisting. "The line of distinction," he says, "be- tween the noblesse and the unprivileged class, being here drawn with the greatest precision, there cannot be a more disagreeable place for such as are, by edu- cation, above the lower ranks, yet have the misfortune of a plebeian birth." We shall immediately see the reason of this. "An honest respectable laborer," he says, "without ambition, yet with a conscious dignity of mind not uncommon among the Spanish peasantry, may, in this respect, well be an object of envy to ma- ny of his betters. Gentlemen treat them with a less haughty and distant air, than is used in England to- * Doblado's Letters. OF AMERICAN SOCIETY. 149 wards inferiors and dependants. A rabadan, (chief shepherd,) or an apvrador, (steward,) is always indulg- ed with a seat, when speaking on business with his master ; and men of the first distinction will have a kind word for every peasant, when riding about the country. Yet they will exclude from their club and billiard table, a well-educated man, because, forsooth, he has no legal title to a Don before his name." The author here states important facts, but he does not give the reasons for them. Why, then, is it, that the Spanish gentry treat their dependants with a less haughty and distant air, than the English ? It is, pre- cisely, because the line of distinction between them is drawn with the greatest exactness. And why is it, that those plebeians, who have the misfortune to be well-educated, are an exception to this liberal treat- ment ? It is simply because, in cultivation and man- ners, they approach nearer to their superiors. It is because they have claims, which it is found necessary to resist by some means ; and the natural barrier is reserve. But in this country there is no other barrier. All the defences of birth and rank are broken down. Here, every man not only has claims, but claims which he is allowed freely to put forward. Hence, the guards against intrusion among us ; the cautions and contri- vances used to avoid intercourse with persons held to be inferior ; the engagements pleaded, ay, and plan- ned, to escape such fatal contact and contamination. Hence, the sensitive dread of being thought vulgar ; and hence, for one reason, the decline of almost all the homely old domestic and village sports, lest they should bring with them that terrible opprobium. An 13* 150 MORAL EXPOSURES aristocratic state of society naturally produces courte- sy, contentment, order ; a republican, ambition, ener- gy, improvement. I have seen a tree on the smooth and verdant lawn, which spread far its branches in un- challenged majesty to the sky, and whose outermost boughs nodded to the violets that grew by its side, and kissed the greensward beneath it ; and in its shadow were the games and sports of a contented and cheer- ful peasantry. And 1 have seen a forest, whose intru- sive underwood choked up the passages, and forced the loftier trees to stretch away from their compan- ions, and tower up towards heaven ; and there was neither space nor time there for games or sports. This, no doubt, in the mouth of an adversary, would be thought a most invidious comparison. But I am prepared to accept the very ground on which it places us, and to defend it. If the agriculturist may hold it to be an advantage, that ten trees should grow where one grew before ; surely, the humane political econo- mist may value that condition which is favorable to the growth of men to the growth of the many. So well am I satisfied with our institutions on this account, that I can afford to look fairly at the inconveniences and dangers that attend them. I trust, indeed, that much of the inconvenient under-brush will be cleared away from our paths, and that we shall see a fairer growth ; in other words, that more perfect relations in society will spring up from the general and equal claims of all. In the meantime, we have less fawning and sycophancy among us, than prevail in other coun- tries. We have fewer parasitical plants in our forest state, than are found clinging around the oaks and elms of Europe. But it must not be denied, that we OF AMERICAN SOCIETY. 151 are sometimes chilled by the shadow of this thick growth of society ; that we are too liable, each one to stand stillly up for his rights; that we are liable to want gracefulness and amenity in our manners ; that we a iv exposed to have our hearts locked up in rigid and frozen reserve. A prince or a nobleman, in a state of unbroken aristocracy, does not fear that his dignity or reputation will be compromised, by the presence of an inferior, in his house or in his society. He is at ease on this point, because his claims stand on an in- dependent basis. But with us, he who would hold a higher place, must obtain it from the general voice. He is dependant on suffrage as truly as the political aspirant. Hence, every circumstance affecting his position, is important to him. And the circumstance that most immediately and obviously affects it, is the company he keeps. On this point, therefore, he is likely to be extremely jealous. And this, I conceive, to be one reason, for the proverbial reserve of our national manners. I have thus far endeavored to unfold the danger on this point, to which I think that our situation exposes us. Let me now observe, that it is one of the most serious moral importance. There is an intimate con- nection between the manners and feelings of a people. A cold demeanor, though it may not prove coldness of heart, tends to produce it. The feelings that are locked up in reserve, are liable to wither and shrink, from simple disuse. He who stands in the attitude of perpetual resistance to the claims of others, is very apt to acquire a hardness and inhumanity towards them. He is liable to be cold, harsh and ungracious, both in feeling and deportment. He is in the very 152 MORAL EXPOSURES school, not of generosity and love, but of selfishness and scorn and pride. And vainly might any Christian people boast of its intelligence, refinement or freedom, if it fail thus, of the essential virtues of the Christian religion. The domestic affections are peculiarly liable to suf- fer under the same influence. "A poor relation" says an English writer, satirizing the manners of his countrymen " is the most irrelevant thing in nature ; a piece of impertinent correspondency ; an odious ap- proximation ; a haunting conscience ; a preposterous shadow, lengthening in the noontide of your prosperi- ty ; an unwelcome remembrancer ; a perpetually re- curring mortification; a drawback upon success; a rebuke to your rising ; a mote in your eye ; a triumph to your enemy ; an apology to your friends."* Where, I was ready to say, but in England but I will gener- alize the observation where, but in countries that give birth and insecurity at once to individual aspirings, could such a satire have been framed ? Not among the wild Highlanders of Scotland ; not among the barbarous chieftains of our own native forests ; not, I think, with the same force at least, in Germany, in France, in Spain, or in Italy. I will not undertake to say how far the satire applies to our own people. But this I say, that we are very liable to deserve it. And I would warn my countrymen, coftld I speak to them, against this odious and barbarous treatment of their poor and depressed or uncourtly relatives, as against a sin worse than sacrilege and blasphemy ! Religion, too, is liable to lose much of its expansion, generosity and beauty, under the pressure of this na Elia. OP AMERICAN SOCIETY. 153 tional reserve. I have sometimes doubted, whether a religion so cold, inaccessible and repulsive, ever could have existed in any other country, as that which has prevailed in this. The manners of the country foster a peculiar reserve among us, an austerity, a sancti- moniousness, nowhere else to be found. The enthu- siasm of the country, checked in every other direction, is checked in this, no less. The same fervor, the same freedom of action, will not be borne in our pulpit, that is welcomed in most other countries. Ridicule " the world's dread laugh" is scarcely any where in the world so much feared as here ; and the reason is, that here, the world every body is judge. The preacher is begirt with a thousand critical eyes. He does not step forth from his lofty stall to his loftier pulpit, to address an ignorant multitude, as he might in Italy or Spain ; but he stands up to address those who are to judge him ; and not inly to judge, but to award him life or death in his profession. But not to wander from the point I have in view ; I declare my conviction, that religion in this country, has a peculiar hardness and repulsiveness ; that it is not genial and gentle, gracious and tender, in the com- mon administration of it ; that it speaks, I do not say to heretics, but to the mass of the people, from the sealed up bosom of a more pitiless exclusion, than it does any where else in the world. The Church of Rome is, indeed, severe and exclusive towards here- tics ; but to its own people, it is all graciousness and love, compared with the Puritan and Presbyterian forms of administration. Individual exceptions, of course, are always to be allowed in representations of this general character ; but I hold that, in the main, 154 MORAL EXPOSURES the Protestantism of other countries the Church of England, for instance, and the Lutheranism of Ger- many are more genial ; that they speak with a kinder tone to the people, than the Protestantism of America. And the consequence is, that multitudes among us, and especially of the young, are more repelled from religion, than the people of any other Christian nation. We are a very religious people, it is said, and it is true ; so it would appear to the eye of a stranger ; and the best foreign writer* who has visited us, has said, that he never saw a people so re- ligious ; and yet I fear, that many among us are very religious, who do not heartily love religion. But es- pecially with regard to the young in this country, I am inclined to think that their state is, in this respect, very singular. It is not the want of religious affec- tions and habits only ; this, though it is to be regret- ted in all countries, is not peculiar to the young any where. But it is a state of the sentiments here, of which I speak. It is a feeling of strange and almost preternatural superstition about religion ; a feeling, in the young, as if religion were shut up from them in seclusion and reserve ; a feeling as if they had nothing to do with it. Why is this ? Why, but because the clergy, in the first place, constitute a peculiar and re- served class because they are guarded and sequester- ed from all the amusements of society, from almost all the scenes of cheerful, social enjoyment ; and because, in the next place, professors of religion mostly are shut up in the iron mask of peculiarity, and communicate with the world, in their religious capacity, as it were * De Tocqueville. OF AMERICAN SOCIETY. 155 only through the bars of an ugly and distorting visor. And these two classes are considered as the represen- tatives of all the religion of the country. How, then, can the young and unreflecting be expected to feel attracted to such a religion? Suppose that all the churches of a country were built in lonely places, like the shrine of Dodona; were set far apart from all human habitation, and were to be approached only by taking a painful pilgrimage, away from all the cheerful haunts of life. This would be only a visible, though, as I admit, a strong representation of the isolated and reserved character which religion has assumed among us. Suppose that all the clergy should put on sack- cloth, and wear long, sad weeds, hanging from the head, the hands, the arms, and every part of their person, and should walk forth among the people with slow and melancholy steps, and an abstracted air; this, I say again, would be only a visible representa- tion of the ideas with which a people may clothe the ministers of religion. And how far does the fact differ from the representation, when the sight of a clergy- man at places of amusement, where every body else may go with perfect propriety, would be accounted a kind of sacrilege, a desecration of his office ! You may clothe a man with an intellectual costume, as re- pulsive as any visible costume. You may thus as truly make him a spectre and a bugbear to the young, as if you made him wear weeds and sackcloth. And if this man, the official representative of religion, is thus invested with a peculiarity, and forced into a solemn reserve, unknown in other countries a re- serve, especially, from most of the cheerful resorts and recreations of society ; if he is seldom seen where 156 MORAL EXPOSURES men are gay and happy ; and if, when he is seen, his presence lays an irksome restraint upon the company he visits, how is it surprising, that our youth should feel that peculiar strangeness and alienation towards religion, of which I am speaking. Suppose that a father were to treat his children in this way ; could they love him ? I allow that in all these things a gra- dual improvement is showing itself. But he cannot have looked deeply into the spirit of society around him, who does not yet see much to lament. And how saddening is the reflection, that at the very time when religion is wanted to mould, to soften, to control and satisfy the bursting affections of the heart, when youth is beginning to feel its nature's great want, when it is swayed by alternate enthusiasm and disappointment, and has not yet stepped deep into vice and worldliness ; how lamentable that it should stand before the altar of religion, listening as to a cold, stern oracle from a heathen shrine, instead of hearing the words, Abba, Father ; instead of feeling that God is its Father, and the Saviour its friend, and every Christian minister its brother ! II. But I must proceed to speak briefly of another trait of the social character, to which the state of po- litical equality exposes us ; and that is discontent. To this I may add, the danger of imprudent and extrava- gant expenditures. But to speak distinctly of the feeling of discontent, in the first place ; it may be observed, that there is scarcely a limit among us, to any man's aspirings. And yet, it is no more possible that all should be first, in this country, than in any other. And the very cir- cumstance that these aspirings are universal and im- OP AMERICAN SOCI18TY. / ^,157 -J portunate, creates among us, as I ha^e saH^aeculiar / /. reaction. This demand, on the one hanfr^ana tfns re- sistance on the other, are likely, it is obvious, to give' y j birth to an unusual and prevalent feeling of discontent. ' SOCIAL AMBITION. 199 II ow this effect is to be wrought out, it is now my purpose to show. You stand then among those, who in common with yourselves, are desirous of the attention, the esteem, the praise of society. You are naturally led to com- pare your success, in this respect, with theirs. You do not escape this comparison by fleeing to a hermit- age, far from the converse of man. You do not es- cape it by taking refuge behind the escutcheon of rank, the honors of a noble birth. You do not escape it, let us suppose, by mounting up into the heights of a false and mystic devotion. You are a man ; you stand among men ; and are one of them. Especially, in this country, do you thus stand. There are no nurse- lings of church or state here; no baby-favorites of so- ciety here, to be fondled in the lap of primogeniture ; no froward children, to be pacified with bright toys, with coronets and titles. The swaddling-clothes of old feudal institutions are here flung aside. You stand among men only as a man, and be it for good or for evil altogether as a man. You may be a child of wealth, but the son of the poorest man from the most barren mountain-side in the country, has a fair chance to outstrip you in the race of honor, and to take a higher place in the world than you ; and he probably will do so. But not to insist on this here you stand, I say, among a thousand competitors ; and of almost every man to whom I could speak in society, I might safely say, somebody is above you somebody has surpassed you some other, in your own walk. An- other preacher has more hearers ; another lawyer, more clients ; another physician, more patients ; an- other author, more readers ; another candidate for the 200 ON SOCIAL AMBITION. attention of society, educated and trained up with yourself perhaps, has more notice, more invitations, more caressings, from the great world than you have. Now, how is this to be met ? There are three conditions under which this supe- rior success may be gained, to which different consid- erations are applicable. Let us dwell upon them for a moment. In the first place, you may say, that it has been un- fairly gained ; that management and chicanery in a profession, dishonesty in business, or insincerity and sycophancy in society, have carried it over you. Then, I ask, would you take that success on condition of adopting the same expedients, the same character? .Would you exchange your happiness, for such happi- ness ? Is such advancement any real success ? If you think so, you are not true to yourself. If you cannot stand calmly, and see such air-bubbles as quackery, falsehood and vanity, rising around and above you, you have yet to learn what is the true dig- nity and self-respect of a man. " But it is rather hard, after all," you may say ; and besides, the questions, you may remind me, are not such unmixed questions as I state ; your rivals have certain merits ; it is by mixing up certain other and lighter things with them, that they rise above you. Then, I say, you must make your election. If you will avail yourself of those other things, you may also have the envied success, such as it is unsatisfactory while it lasts, and likely enough to be short-lived but such as it is, you may have it. But if you will not make that compromise, if you will keep your integrity, then be your integrity your reward. It is reward enough. It is, indeed, the ON SOCIAL AMBITION. 20 1 true success. I do not deny that it will cost you an effort, a trial. I look upon society as designed, through its very injustice, to put our truth, simplicity and inde- pendence to severe proof. But let them stand the proof, and they shall come forth as gold purified from the furnace. But, in the next place, it may be true, that others have surpassed you, by superior industry, by harder study, by greater efforts to accomplish themselves, and to render their manners agreeable to the world around them. Of this case, there is, of course, nothing to be said, but that all complaint on the part of the indolent and negligent is totally unreasonable ; and, indeed, is not to be reasoned with ; but only to be rebuked. Without dwelling upon this, therefore, I pass at once to the third, and, to most persons, probably, the hardest case of all : the case, I mean, in which the superiority of one to another is the gift of nature, or of circumstances. One inherits wealth ; another has beauty ; a third is endowed with high intellectual gifts. And from one or another of these causes, or from all of them combined, some are placed above you in the world, and, perhaps, far above you. They are sought as you are not sought ; they are admired and praised as you are not admired and praised. Attention, adu- lation, homage, are poured out in lavish abundance, at their feet ; their names are written in every news- paper, or mentioned in every drawing-room ; while you sit in silent places, beneath the shadow of the do- mestic roof, or by the humble way-side of life ; and the great world passes you by, without comment or inquiry. This, I say, is one of the great trials of so- ciety this is, perhaps, the greatest trial in its utmost 202 ON SOCIAL AMBITION. pressure- and I come now, again to the question, how is it to be met? My answer to this question will relate, first to the distinction itself, and next to the state of mind with which it is to be regarded. In the first place, the distinction is far less than it seems ; I mean that it is far less to the successful as* pirant, than it seems to the observer. Somebody is above Mm, as far as he is above you ; and he is, per- haps, as little satisfied with his advancement, as you are with yours. He does not estimate his success as you do ; and he is, probably, just as anxious to rise to some higher point, as you are to rise to his point. The same questions, it is likely, the same trials are passing in his mind that are passing in yours. Nay, how often is it the case, that the man, upon whose position you are looking with admiration, and almost with envy, whom you dare not approach, by whom you imagine that your attentions would be scorned how often is he pining, in discontent, in loneliness, and under fan- cied neglect ! The cup of successful ambition, I doubt not, is often drank in solitariness, and is dashed be- sides, with many a bitter ingredient. But, in the next place, distinction is not only less than it seems, but it is, in another respect, of far less importance than it seems. It is so, I mean, in this respect ; that it has no peculiar portion in the love of society. Admiration, praise, notice, it may have ; but love is not the guerdon of success. That belongs to goodness, and to goodness alone. It is not talent, wealth or beauty that wins affection. No ; let it not be thought that God has dealt so unequally with his earthly children, as to make the dearest boon of social ON SOCIAL AMBITION. 203 existence, love, to depend on any factitious or arbitrary distinctions. He has thrown lighter toys among those children, to fall irregularly, and to be gathered une- qually, and according to no strict rule of justice for- tunes and honors, stars and coronets, and crowns, has he thus disposed of, to be scrambled for and often to be crushed and spoiled in the grasp which gains them ; but so has he not disposed of the solid and enduring wealth of love. No, not to high birth nor haughty rank ; not to beauty, proud of peerless charms ; not to genius that stands aloft in misanthropic scorn to none of these is love given. It is dispensed on a more rigorous condition. It is no chance prize, no " acci- dent of an accident." It is taken out of the blind lot- tery of life. To goodness, and to goodness only, is true love given. And well, full well is that boon earned, and dearly, most dearly is it cherished, in ten thousand thousand dwellings, unadorned by wealth, unknown to fame, unvisited by the flaunting robes of worldly fashion. By those still waters of deep, pure love, let the multitudes of men sit down of those si- lent fountains let them drink deep, and not disturb them, nor turn them into bitterness, by eager and angry struggles, for the lighter gifts of worldly dis- tinction. But I have admitted that these gifts have their value, and conceding this to them, I am to consider, in the second place, and finally, with what state of mind they are to be regarded. And the first feeling which is called for in the cir- cumstances, is one of profound submission to the will of God. Your neighbor holds a position above you, I have supposed, not merely by the aid of arts which 204 ON SOCIAL AMBITION. you. cannot practise, and do not envy ; not alone by means of superior industry or study, to which you are bound in justice to give place ; but by the force of talents, or other recommendations, which he owes to the sovereign Dispenser of every blessing. It is God, therefore, who has made you to differ. Was it for you to demand of the great Creator, what measure of abilities, what charms of person, what endowments of fortune, or what honors of parentage, he should be- stow upon you ? Even if you could perceive no good reasons, in the general economy of things, why one human being should differ from another ; even if you thought it ever so desirable that all men, in natural advantages, should stand on a perfect level, it is enough for you to know, that disparity is the sovereign ordina- tion of the infinite will. Thy neighbor's greatness, be it derived from original talent, from beauty, or high parentage, is the shrine of the Almighty Sover- eignty. Before it thou shouldest stand in awe ; in awe, I say, not of thy neighbor, but in awe of God. And the voice which comes from that shrine, to thy murmuring thought, is, " be still, and know that I am God !" Dost thou complain of this ? As well might- est thou demand, that some higher world had been as- signed thee for thy sphere ! As well mightest thou demand, that thou hadst been made one of a loftier order of creatures angel or archangel. Here I might pause. But I would not leave the subject without pointing out some other states of mind, with which the trial, whether of real or supposed in- feriority, is to be met. With this purpose in view, let us look at our own nature, and let us look around us, upon our fellow-men. To gain the end in view, it is ON SOCIAL AMBITBON. "* Va , 205 * needful that we look upon our fello\J^merf wVh toye ancr 7* confidence upon our own nature, wS^devout*^rati- 4 tude and veneration. ' ' . \*y Upon our fellow- men, I say, let us look with love, with confidence. To our peace of mind, this is essen- tial. A man may think lightly of this advice ; he may disdain to submit the high controversy with his rivals to a moral force ; he may smile in derision, when we put forward the dictates of a gentle and loving spirit, to wrestle with the strong and stormy passions of hu- man life ; he may say, that it is as if we sent a child into the battle of armed men ; yet let me tell that man, that this is the only thing this child in the man's heart this child-like love, this child-like confidence is the only thing that can bring the poor and miserable strifes and envyings of the world to an end. Let him call it what he will weak, poor-spirited, mean it is the only thing that can help him. That emblem-child which our Saviour once set in the midst of his ambi- tious disciples, is here the only powerful teacher. Re- fuse that teaching, pursue the worldly course refuse, in short, to stand in any relation to your fellow-beings, but that of strife for the precedence ; and there is no help for you. It is not in heaven nor earth to help you. It is thus that the disinterested love of our kind is made a necessity ; not to be dispensed with, but upon condition of giving up all true peace of mind. Thus stern and uncompromising is the language of Providence. If you had been called upon only to love and admire beings far above you, in some loftier sphere of existence, it had been easy. So had you been little tried. But you are placed side by side, with beings who, some of them, tower above you ; 18 206 ON SOCIAL AMBITION. you are placed in this close pressure of social compe- tition and why ? It is, I say, that every particle of mean selfishness and base envy, may be expelled from your bosom. Love, then pure, confiding, generous, disinterested love has become to you a necessity. You cannot do without it. You might have stood without it on some solitary and barren point, alone in the creation ; but in the world, you cannot live, and be happy without it. And how often have I seen, and surely was struck with observing it, that simple love, simple confidence, simple self-forgetfulness, makes its way in the world, makes its way to the heart, penetrates through all barriers finding every where an open door, and good welcome and acceptance ! I will not say that it was plain iniperson, poor in estate, or humble in condition ; it might be so, or it might not ; but this I mean to say, that in every sphere, disinterested goodness is the pre- eminent quality ; happy in itself, and most likely, other things being equal, to be happy in the love of others. Yes, amidst all the selfishness and injustice of the world, this is true. And, therefore, would I send every complainer, every murmurer, every jealous or anxious or desponding person, that is ever thinking of himself I would send him to the school of love to the school of Christ. Thou mayest seek, restless, dis- contented one !- many resources, many reliefs ; but thou must come to Christ, if ever thou wouldst find rest to thy soul. This is no cant language, no lan- guage of the pulpit merely ; it is the language of sim- ple truth ; the only language that applies to the simple, actual relations of being to being. Had there been no Bible had there been no religion, it were true. Never ON SOCIAL AMBITION. 207 canst thou look rightly upon thy neighbor, upon thy companion, soaring above thee, unless thou lookest upon him in a kindly and loving spirit. This only can compose the miserable strifes of society. Come down, celestial goodness ! as an angel, come down ; and un- seal the fountains of healing, and spread new life and beauty over the barrenness of an unkindly, envious and unhappy world ! One further consideration I have mentioned, and to that I would invite your attention for a moment in close. It is the consideration of our own nature. Your neighbor is above you in the world's esteem, perhaps above you, it may be, in fact ; but what are you t You are a man ; you are a rational and reli- gious being ; you are an immortal creature. Yes, a glad and glorious existence is yours ; your eye is opened to the lovely and majestic vision of nature ; the paths of knowledge are around you, and they stretch onward to eternity ; and most of all, the glory of the infinite God, the all-perfect, all-wise, and all- beautiful, is unfolded to you. What now, compared with this, is a little worldly eclat ? The treasures of infinity and of eternity are heaped upon thy laboring thought ; can that thought be deeply occupied with questions of mortal prudence ? It is as if a man were enriched by some generous benefactor, almost beyond measure, and should find nothing else to do, but to vex himself and complain, because another man was made a few thousands richer. Where, unreasonable complainer ! dost thou stand, and what is around thee ? The world spreads before thee its sublime mysteries, where the thoughts of sages lose themselves in wonder ; the ocean lifts up its eter- 208 ON SOCIAL AMBITION. nal anthems to thine ear; the golden sun lights thy path ; the wide heavens stretch themselves above thee, and worlds rise upon worlds, and systems beyond sys- tems, to infinity : and dost thou stand in the centre of all this, to complain of thy lot and place ? Pupil of that infinite teaching ! minister at Nature's great altar ! child of heaven's favor ! ennobled being ! redeemed creature ! must thou pine in sullen and envious mel- ancholy, amidst the plenitude of the whole creation 1 " But thy neighbor is above thee," thou sayest. What then ? What is that to thee ? What, though the shout of millions rose around him ? What is that, to the million-voiced nature that God has given thee ? That shout dies away into the vacant air ; it is not his : but thy nature- thy favored, sacred and glorious nature is thine. It is the reality to which praise is but a fleeting breath. Thou canst meditate the things, which applause but celebrates. In that thou art a man, thou art infinitely exalted above what any man can be, in that he is praised. I had rather be the hum- blest man in the world, than barely be thought greater than the greatest. The beggar is greater, as a man, than is the man, merely as a king. Not one of the crowds that listened to the eloquence of Demosthenes and Cicero not one who has bent with admiration over the pages of Homer or Shakspeare not one who followed in the train of Cesar or of Napoleon, would part with the humblest power of thought, for all the fame that is echoing over the world and through the ages. Upon those mighty resources, then, upon those in- finite benefactions of thy being, cast thyself and be satisfied. Thou canst read ; thou canst think ; thou ON SOCIAL AMBITION. 209 canst feel ; thou canst love and be loved ; thou canst love the infinitely lovely : say, then, that it is enough ! In that ocean of good, let poor and pitiful pride and ambition be swallowed up. Amidst an in- finitude of blessings, let humble gratitude and bound- less reverence, be the permament forms and charac- ters of thy being. 18* 210 DISCOURSE IX. ON THE PLACE WHICH EDUCATION AND RELIGION MUST HAVE, IN THE IMPROVEMENT OF SOCIETY, II. PETER I. 5 7. Add to your faith virtue; and to VIRTUE, KNOWLEDGR ; AND TO KNOWLEDGE, TEMPERANCE ; AND TO TEMPERANCE, PATIENCE ; AND TO PATIENCE, GODLI- NESS J AND TO GODLINESS, BROTHERLY-KINDNESS ; AND TO BROTHERLY-KINDNESS, CHARITY. I have thus far, in this series of discourses on soci- ety, been occupied chiefly with the consideration of evils and dangers. I shall in this discourse, invite your attention to remedial and conservative principles. It is not my intention, however, to apply them to the evils already stated, since it was natural to connect with the notice of them, some consideration of the proper remedies ; and since there are other evils no less obvious and urgent. I may add here, that I aim at no completeness in this series of discourses ; my plan is to notice only such topics, however isolated and dis- connected, as justly press themselves upon our atten- tion, in the moral views which we are taking of mod- ern society. The principles of improvement and safety which I propose now to examine, are education and religion. The space which I shall be able to give to these sub- jects, in a single discourse, must be, compared with OF SOCIETY. 211 their importance, very small ; and, indeed, instead of attempting fully to discuss their social bearings, my purpose rather is, in accordance with the hint of my text, to suggest some things which need to be added to the popular views of them. But let us consider, for a moment, the state of things on which these suggestions are to bear. It is, doubtless, a very extraordinary state of things. Its distinctive feature, is a grand popular movement, slowly propagating itself through all civilized nations ( a revolution of ideas, which is elevating the mass of mankind to importance and power ; and, in fact, to the eventual government of the world. It is a revolution which goes alike beyond all former examples in history, and principles in philosophy. The education of this age that mass of sentiment and maxims which it has received from former ages does not prepare it to understand itself. Though the noblest genius and philosophy of former times, have been distinguished by their generous recognition of the claims of humanity ; yet they have seldom descended to work out the great problem of human rights. They have shown more ad- miration for human nature, than confidence in it. Their speculations, indeed, have proceeded upon grounds widely different from the present state of facts. When Aristotle discoursed in such discouraging terms on the popular tendencies, he discoursed concerning a people that could not read ; that had no newspapers ; that were ignorant and brutal, compared with our educated and Christian communities. When Plato reasoned of his ideal republic, his ground was pure hypothesis ; his work pure fiction. The philosophy of modern politics, has not been written in past times ; it cannot 212 THE CONSERVATIVE PRINCIPLES be written now ; that work, I believe, in its full per- fection must be left to a future age. I do not pretend to say what it will be ; the principle of intelligent, Christian freedom may develope results, that are out of the range of our present contemplation. But this, I think, is evident, that when the future philosopher and historiographer rises, that shall analyze and pour- tray the stupendous revolution that is now passing in the civilized world, he will speak of a revolution hav- ing no precedent in history. None was ever so uni- versal, so profound, or so fearful. All former revolu- tions have been local, occasional and sanguinary/ In former days, when power has been wrested from its despotic possessor, it has been done only by a violent and bloody hand. But now, an influence, silent and irrisistible, is rising up from the mass of the people, and is stealing from thrones and princedoms and hier- archies their unjust prerogatives ; and, at the same time, as if by some wonder-working magic, is making their incumbents helpless to resist, and even willing to obey. /Potentates are learning a new lesson, and so are tne people too./feefore, revolutions have been violent and bloody, from the very weakness of those who have carried them on, from the very uncertainty whether they should succeed. Now, the people are reposing in calm security upon their undoubted strength. Assurance has made them moderate^/ Let no one mistake their moderation for apathy, or their quietness for defeat ; for they are calm only in pro- portion as they are determined and sure.* * Nothing surprised me more, four years ago in England, than what appeared at first sight, this apathy ; this mpderated OF SOCIETY. 213 Such is, undoubtedly, the character of the present era, however we may regard the good or the evil involved in it. To me, I confess, it is far the most momentous and sublime era in the history of th<> world. The introduction of Christianity, and the discovery of printing the two greatest events on record are, in fact, now producing, for the first time, on the broad theatre of national fortunes, the very results which we are witnessing* They have given birth, if not to the free principles of modern times, at least, to their free action. Like the sun and the moon in heaven, they have penetrated by their influence the great deep of society. The effect produced, may well awaken that solemn and even religious emotion in the mind, of which a late distinguished writer has spoken. What is now presented to the attention of the world, is not, as formerly, kingdoms convulsed, or navies wrecked upon the shore, but that " tide in the affairs of men," that slow rising, and gradual swelling of the whole ocean of society, which is to bear every tiling upon its bosom. >*It is scarcely possible to speak of this great move- ment of modern society, without something like anxiety and apprehension. The very terms, in which our conceptions of it naturally clothe themselves, bear an aspect as of something portentous and fearful. And that there is actual danger in this revolution of opinions, I am so far from denying, that it is the very purpose of this discourse to discuss the only principles of safety. tone of the most radical reformers^ but how much more was I struck, to find, on closer observation, this deeper determination, this repose of conscious strength ; the purpose to succeed not weakened, but only stronger in its calmness! 214 THE CONSERVATIVE PRINCIPLES But, at the same time, I cannot take my place among the alarmists. I cannot believe, that the feel- ing of apprehension which is springing up all over the civilized world, is justified in its full extent. There are dangers, doubtless : what season of probation for high ends, ever failed to be a season of peril ? To warn one another of that peril ; to summon brave, honest and true hearts to meet it; to stand amidst the people as one of their brethren, and to lift up the voice of friendly admonition, is well. How well it is, to stand aloof from them, and to fling down dis- couragement and scorn upon the popular cause, I must leave others to determine. But this I must say, that if indeed that cause shall fail, if the future historian of this momentous period, must write its story in tears and blood, I shall ever believe it will be, in part, be- cause the proper intellectual guides of the world, were not true to the solemn trust reposed in them. It is, indeed, an extraordinary fact a fact reversing, in a striking manner, the usual course of things that while opinion ordinarily propagates itself from the more educated to the more ignorant classes, the popular cause is now rising and swelling against the loudest remonstrances of so many superior minds, as if it were, indeed, an ocean-tide, against which nothing is destined to prevail. This remonstrance, this alarm, seems to me, I have ventured to say, to be carried to an unwarrantable ex- tent. Alarm, indeed, appears to be one of the epi- demic diseases of the age. Every religious associa- tion, every little spiritual coterie, every school of sect, speculation and philanthrophy, is trembling for the fate of the world. Now, the philosophy of the world OF SOCIETY. 215 is going to ruin it ; tten, its extravagance, intemper- ance, licentiousness is to do the work ; then popery, heresy, infidelity, is elevated to this bad eminence in mischief. The danger from some of these quarters, I freely admit. But,)k is really worth while to observe, through how many prophecies of ruin, through how many critical and doomed periods, the world has lived./ Truly, one is sometimes tempted to say to these alarm- ists, " Good sirs, have a little patience ; the world is likely to last our time ; the purposes of Providence will stand, though you be disappointed in some of your favorite theories or projects." It is one effect of this alarm, to turn the public at- tention too much to immediate and palpable resorts for safety, to the readiest instruments that come to hand, rather than to those deep and broad foundations which must be laid in the moral education, the culti- vated and spiritualized mind of the community. Thus, if some Constitution can be preserved, if some House of Lords can be hedged about with impregnable de- fences, it seems to be thought, that the world will be saved. Thus, almost all the reforms of the day, are turning upon some palpable evil; as intemperance, licentiousness, pauperism. But important or other- wise, as any of these efforts may be, there is a work of redemption that must go deeper, must go down into the heart of the world, or it will not be saved, in the great crisis that is approaching. ^How easy were it to show, that there are evils lying beneath all palpa- ble evils, and which, if the same universal attention were fixed upon them, would appear far greater. In- temperance, licentiousness, pauperism, and with these, popular violence, mobs and tumults, are all but indexes 216 THE CONSERVATIVE PRINCIPLES of deeper evils, symptoms of deeper maladies, that are seated in the very heart of society. Alas ! the world is not well, is not happy in itself the infinite wants of humanity are not provided for else, would not the world break out, on every hand, for relief from those necessities and pains, that are preying upon its inmost bosom. I must add, that even where the real conservative principles, education and religion, are resorted to, they are too often, I fear, but superficially regarded ; and are, as they are used, but ready instruments, instead of being considered as deep principles and thorough remedies. If education with us, is a mere technical system, a mere teaching of the arts and sciences com- monly learned in schools ; if religion is a mere state- engine, or only a form or creed, or barely a charity to the poor and vicious, neither will exert the needed influence. It is striking to observe, that the whole strength of the Tory party in England, all its will, wish and thought about religion, seems to be occupied with the preservation of a visible Establishment. I may do injustice to this aim, but it seems to me, that it is, in the hands of many of its most earnest sup- porters, the mere worldly scheme of worldly men ; and certain I am, that no such schemeowill answer now. I maintain, on the contrary, that deeper views of education and religion must be added to those which now prevail ; that to education must be added a moral influence, and to religion a deeper philosophy and a more thoroughly practical character, in order to make them the guardian powers that the present age requires. /And these are the positions, of which it is now my further purpose, to attempt some illustration. OF SOCIETY. 217 The first subject to be considered is education. From the earliest settlement of the country, this has engaged the earnest attention of our communities. We have set the first example in the world, of the in- struction of the whole mass of the people. Education has ever been our watch-word, and our boast. No celebration of any public festival, no grave dissertation of the closet upon our institutions, ever omits the re cognition of its importance. On every side, it is con- stantly represented, as the sheet-anchor of our liberty. Well is it that we pay this* homage to education ; but have we sufficiently considered what it must be, to answer the end proposed ? Have we not made it a mere watch-word have we not regarded it as a mere talisman, and expected some magical effects from it, rather than entered into a deep consideration of its nature ; of the qualities which adapt it to the preservation of the national order and security ? I beg attention to this inquiry. And for the pur- pose of awakening that attention, I wish to present to you one or two extraordinary facts bearing on this point, from the history of education in Europe. In Prussia, where, so far as mechanism is concerned, the most perfect system of public instruction ever known, has recently been adopted in that kingdom, I say, education is considered as nothing without religion. " The first vocation of every school," says one of its ordinances, " is to train up the young in such a man- ner as to implant in their minds, a knowledge of the relation of man to God, and at the same time, to ex- cite both the will and the strength, to govern their lives after the spirit and precepts of Christianity. Schools must early train children to piety, and, there- 19 218 THE CONSERVATIVE PRINCIPLES fore, must strive to second and complete the early instructions of parents." Again, in France, which some while since sent one of her most distinguished philosophers* to inquire into the Prussian system of education, and where that system, but without its re- ligious influence, has been partially adopted, we are presented with this extraordinary and astounding statement viz., that in the best educated departments, tlie greatest amount of crime has been found to exist. This is not an observation made at hazard ; it is abso- lutely a matter of statistics. Nakedly stated, the fact is this ; that education in France has produced crime. This, at least, is what is admitted by the friends of education in France, and insisted upon by its enemies in England ;f and with my views of the subject, I have no difficulty in admitting that it is true. For this is the view which I take ; that education, considered simply as instruction in reading, writing, arithmetic, &c, education, separate from any moral influence, does not necessarily tend to make any peo- ple better, and may be easily perverted, so as to make them worse. " Knowledge," it is often said, " is power ;" but it is power, as capable of bad as of good uses. Thus, the knowledge of reading and writing communicated to a people, may only increase the number of forgers and counterfeiters : the knowledge of arithmetic may only multiply the chances of knavery in accounts. Thus, also, an acquaintance through newspapers, with the conduct of government or of obnoxious individuals, may urge a simple people to * Cousin. See his Report on the Prussian System. | See an article on Democracy, in Blackwood's Magazine, No. 225. OF SOCIETY. 210 disaffection and treason, or hurry a quiet people into mobs and tumults. And, in the same way, general knowledge, into which no moral principles are infused, may lead men to ambition, discontent, envy and un- happiness, and by these means, to excess, extrava- gance and vice. But I am speaking mainly of that particular knowledge, which is commonly gained in schools. There is, indeed, a higher intelligence which is favorable to virtue, inasmuch as it sees all else but virtue, to be utter folly and mistake. But of know- ledge, considered as a mere technical acquisition, I say, that it is a mere instrument, whose use and utility will depend on its moral direction. It is upon these clear and* indisputable grounds, that I maintain the necessity of adding to our knowledge, virtue ; to our system of education, a moral and spiritual influence. Other things must be taught in our schools, besides the elements usually considered as belonging to them. Good morals and pious senti- ments should be as anxiously and earnestly taught, as reading and writing. But I must not be content on this vital point, with a general statement. Education, in the largest sense, is the preparation of the mind for the scene in which it is to act. What, then, should be the education of a free people and, indeed, of human beings as such ? I an- swer, that our youth should be taught, at some period before they leave the common schools, that they are to be electors, jurors, magistrates, and, perhaps, legisla- tors ; and thus, virtually, rulers of the country. They should be made to feel something of the weighty charge that is about to be devolved upon them. They should be made to understand the duties to their coun- 2*20 THE CONSERVATIVE PRINCIPLES try and to their God, which are implied in the trust they are about to assume. Were this faithfully taught in all our schools, we might hope, ere long, to see a time, when the whole political action of the country should not run to passion and caprice and prejudice, and a mere contest for the mastery. Were this done, we might hope to. see, ere long, an end of that pernicious distinction, which is. now, made be- tween individual and party morality, between personal and official. conscience ; and political confidence and public honor would no longer be heaped upon men, whose lives are stained with private vices. Again, an education of youth for the part they have to act in our communities, should enter deeply into their social relations, should imbue their minds with independ- ence, magnanimity, candor and courtesy, should put them on their guard against ambitious aspirings and preying discontents, should moderate the strife for social precedence, should teach respect for the laws, should clothe the constitution of the country with an inviolable panoply, should arm the majesty of legal justice with the authority of conscience. In fine, an education for life, essentially involves the deepest prin- ciples.. of religion ; and though the family is the great school for this kind of education, yet no school should fail of recognising it, as a part of the nurture and dis- cipline, of youth. The weariness and ennui that are commonly witnessed in our schools, the indocility and insubordination of which there is so much complaint, arise, in a considerable measure, from the want of any perceived connection between them and the practical objects of life. The child does not well understand what all this study is for. Place, then, before him. OF SOCIETY. 221 the scene of life, make it a part of the regular business of instruction, to speak to him of the situations in which he will be placed, and of what will be a just and noble conduct in them ; and then, as surely as human nature has any principles to be relied on, their attention and interest will be aroused. The ends of life, the princi- ples of happiness, the art of living physically, mentally and morally considered the morals of business and pleasure, the occupations and callings of men, carried into detail what they are, what are the instruments they work with, what is their utility, what are their duties all these subjects, not in dry and abstract terms, such as I now use, but with vivid and almost dramatic representation, might be presented to our youth, and contribute to that intelligence and virtue, which are the basis of our national well-being and safety. Education must rise among us, or the nation must sink. That it will advance, I cannot doubt, when I see the spirit that is manifested in various parts of the country. But there is one alarming fact, that ought to fix the attention of the country, till it is aroused to greater exertions than it has yet put forth. The pro- gress of population in some of the states, is, at this mo- ment, outstripping the progress of education. There was a time when scarcely a youth could be found in the whole nation, who was not taught the elements of learning. The number of the uninstructed, is now some hundreds of thousands, if it must not, indeed, be stated to be more than a million ! I know not in what terms to dwell upon this fact, that shall present its full claims upon the public attention. If nations, as such, have ever any vocation, ours is to educate the people. 19* 2*22 THE CONSERVATIVE PRINCIPLES If Providence ever laid a weight of obligation like the weight of destiny, upon any people, it has laid that ob- ligation upon us. If it ever spread before the eyes of any people, the yawning gulf of destruction, and dis- tinctly w T arned them to beware of it, it has spread be- fore us, in that character, the dark gulf of popular ignorance. Into it, the nation will inevitably descend, unless it is closed up. No single sacrifice, like the fabled sacrifice of the Roman Curtius, can avert the danger. The fearful chasm in our popular education, can be closed only by the united efforts of the whole people. A representative government represents the character of the people. And that government which represents prevailing^ ignorance, degradation, brutality and passion, has its fate as certainly sealed, as if, from the cloud that envelopes the future, a hand came forth, and wrote upon your mountain walls, the doom of ut- ter perdition ! To avert such a doom, the next great power to which we appeal, is religion. Intelligence and reli- gion are the two grand conservative principles of all society. And neither of them can be relied on, to the exclusion of the other. Religion is wanted to give to intelligence a right direction ; and intelligence is equal- ly wanted to make religion rational, sober and wise ; to preserve it from superstition and fanaticism ; from that fatal substitution, so common, of forms and fancies and articles of faith for practical virtue. I say, that neither of these great conservative principles can be dispensed with. Many political economists have in- sisted on the necessity of education, without seeming to-be sensible of the necessity of religion. But I can- not understand upon what ground a man can believe OP SOCIETY. 223 in one, without believing in the other. Nay, if I be- lieved in neither, if I looked upon the frame of society only with the eye of an artist, if I cared not what be- came of human governments, or the human character, or any thing else human, I should still be compelled to see and admit, that there is no basis for human wel- fare, individual, social or national, none conceivable or possible, none provided by the great Framer of the world, but intelligence and virtue. But it is not my purpose in this discourse, to defend so large, and, I hope, so evident a proposition. It is my design rather, as I have stated it, to point out an extension of the great conservative principles, which, I apprehend is not equally admitted, or, at least, not equally considered. This design, so far as it relates to religion, contemplates that subject in two relations to the general welfare ; first, to the poor and distress- ed classes of society, and secondly, to the whole body. With regard to pauperism, and its consequent mis- eries and vices, the religious action of society has hither- to mostly contented itself with charities ; with means and efforts directed to the relief of its palpable evils. I trust the time has now arrived, when a new princi- ple is to be adopted. This principle is, to do the least possible for the body, and the utmost possible for the mind ; to apply ourselves directly to the root of all evrl, the sours ignorance and debasement ; to elevate the physical condition, through the improvement of the moral condition. It has, at length, been found out, that general and indiscriminate charities only multiply the evils which they propose to relieve ; that pauperism grows by 224 THE CONSERVATIVE PRINCIPLES what it thus feeds on. The history of English chari- ties has shown this on a large scale, and our own experience, so far as we have followed that example, has brought out the same result. This treatment of pauperism constantly produces a two-fold effect ; phy- sical necessity and mental imbecility together, grow and thrive upon it. So certain is this, that beggary has become, to every reflecting man, who has looked into the subject, the index to the saddest combination of physical and moral evils. In Europe there is more apology for it. But I confess, that in our country, in our streets, it affects me to see a man or a woman stretch out the hand for alms. For I know, that in almost all cases, it is an indication just as clear as if a placard were presented by that hand, setting forth a story of indolence, improvidence, vice and degrada- tion. And just as plainly would a true hand-writing show, that to give to such applicants, is, in almost every instance, only to increase all that debasement and misery. Nay, and I am inclined to think there is more suffering that is buried in silence, ay, and clothed in the decent garb of respectable poverty, than is indicated by the brazen beggary of the streets. Still, I admit, that such cases are to be attended to. But I maintain, that the only right attention is that which follows them to their homes. When it finds there, sickness, or helpless age, or urgent distress, which for the moment nothing else can meet, it is to give relief. But the grand principle of all wise charity is, that he who would benefit a poor family, must visit it, must make himself acquainted with its condition and character, and must apply himself to the removal OF SOCIETY. 225 of these mental and moral evils which lie at the foun- dation of all its wants and miseries.* In fine, religion, when it addresses itself to the re- lief of indigence, must learn to respect the poor, and to feel for them. " To goodness we must add bro- therly kindness." I fear we little know what a deep and almost terrific sentiment of hatred, is often engen- dered in the breasts of the poor, by the ordinary ad- ministration of charities. They feel themselves de- graded rather than obliged, by this manner of giving. They become, in fact, ' enemies of their benefactors. They have their part to play as well as the philan- thropists. They consider it a sort of contest between them ; and their business is to get all they can ; to deceive as much as possible ; and to remunerate them- selves, to the utmost, for the unhappy and degrading relation which they sustain to their superiors. This is human nature. And it is only by forgetting what human nature is, that we have been able to overlook this inevitable result. A man is not to be relieved as your horse or your dog may be. It must be done with a sentiment of respect. I would that a new mode of giving were introduced, more accordant with the humanity and gentleness of the Gospel. I would that a man should be pained by having a fellow-being approach him in the humble attitude of a beggar. I would that a flush of ingenuous and sympathizing shame, should overspread the brow of the giver. Alms are not to be a matter of business ; and yet let it be * On this head, I cannot do any thing so well, as to refer the reader to Mr. Arnold's last admirable Report. It is Mr. A.'s "Seventh Semi-annual Report of his service as Minister at large in New York." 226 THE CONSERVATIVE PRINCIPLES considered whether all public and indiscriminate chari- ties will not, without the greatest care, inevitably be of this character. They must not be conferred upon the poor with indifference, or flung to them with contempt. Would you do good then to your poor brethren of the human family respect them, love them, feel for them. Go forth, and commune with them. Lay aside your robes of pride ; they will but entangle you. Go freely forth, and as you have opportunity, mingle with them ; commune with them frankly ; help them ; com- fort them ; make them respect themselves ; make them virtuous ; make them4iappy. How can you hope to do the good you ought to do, to your poor brethren, till in deep sympathy you feel and act as one among them, and of them ? They are not out of the pale of hu- manity. They are your brethren. You are of them. Before the great Giver, you are all poor. Where is the proud, strong, rich man, that stands aloof from his fellow-man, as if he were one of another species ? To-morrow, perhaps, thou shalt lie down upon thy bed, to die poor as the poorest about to be stripped of every thing. To-day, thou oughtest to kneel down before thy God, and to say, "give me, O thou Supreme and ever Gracious One not gold and silver but that which is infinitely dearer, that which I infinitely more need than ever houseless outcast needed my alms give me thy pardon, thy mercy, thine everlasting favor !" Such, my friends, is the application of religion to the single relation in society of the rich to the poor ; let us now consider it in its bearing on the welfare of the whole social body. OF SOCIETY. 227 The simple and single question is, what kind of reli- gion is adapted to the ends of our particular govern- ment and our peculiar social economy ? If religion were to answer the purposes of a despotic govern- ment, it might be a mere political engine, a creature of the state. Such were most of the religions of an- tiquity. If it were to be the mere tool of a priesthood, or of an ecclesiastical state, it might be, to answer that purpose, a superstition and a bondage. Believing, ac- quiescing, submitting, might then be every thing, and practice, little or nothing. But if religion is to be the friend, the improver and guardian of a whole people, what must it then be ? I might answer in the very words of Scripture, and say, that it must be a religion " first, pure ; then, peace- able ; full of good fruits, without partiality, and without hypocrisy ;" or in the words of my text, and say, " add to godliness, brotherly kindness, and to brotherly kind- ness, charity." But let us enter into some detail ; and looking be- yond the narrow bounds of sectarian preference, let us consider upon broad and rational grounds, what the religion of a free people must be. Surely, it must first of all, be pure. It must lay the axe at the root of every thing wrong in society. It must hold no compromise with the vices either of the rich or of the poor, of the high or of the low ; of poli- ticians or private men, of statesmen or citizens. All are to come under one grand law, and to be amenable to one rule. There is to be no saving clause for peo- ple of condition, for the great or rich, for prince or monarch. None are to be considered as above the restraints of religion, and none beneath its mercies. 228 THE CONSERVATIVE PRINCIPLES But the main consideration on which I intend to in- sist is, that our religion must be practical. Solemn forms, and dark scholastic dogmas, might answer the purpose of producing an outward decency and an im- plicit acquiescence, but they will not be living powers, acting on the vital interests of society. Doctrines, that have been written in books, must be written in the heart. Creeds must not take the place of virtues, nor professions of principles. All substitutions that pre- vent religion from bearing directly upon the heart and the daily life, must be done away. Nor is the work to be done in this respect, a slight one. How much religion is kept from the hearts of the people by the common forms of its administration, is a serious ques- tion. In this view, I look with more than doubt, upon the peculiar constitution of the church in this country. We have not an establishment, and we bless ourselves in our exemption from it. But we have what I fear is worse in its effect upon the popular mind, an eccle- siastical oligarchy. In most other Christian countries, the people are regarded as the children* of the church, and are freely invited to participate in its ordinances. Two or three sects among ourselves, the Catholics, the Episcopalians, and the Unitarians in some of their churches, follow the same rule. But with these ex- ceptions, the churches of this country hold the grand characteristic ordinances of Christianity, in the power of their vote. And if religion, in its only embodied form, thus stands aloof from the people, if it surrounds itself with a barrier of exclusion, does it not so far cut itself off from free access to individual minds and hearts? In such a country as this, above all others, religion should be the liberal, generous and gracious OF SOCIETY. 229 protector and friend of the people. No otherwise can it be efficient and practical. But there are other defects in its administration. If religion clothes itself with the cumbrous armor of the Middle Ages, with scholastic dogmas and disquisitions, it cannot worthily and manfully fight the battle for freedom. The great foes of our liberty, sin, vice, avar- ice, sensuality, luxury and social ambition, are not so to be vanquished. What care they for decrees, and substitutions, and imputations of righteousness, and the subtilties of creeds paper shields and helmets of parchment, and solemn priestly robes what, I repeat, do the rooting herds of worldliness and voluptousness, care for them ? Religion must come to a closer con- test with human wickedness, if it would ever gain the mastery. The pulpit must be unchained. The preacher must be free. No fastidious solemnity, no artificial sanctity, no superstitious dogmas of prevailing opinion about what is peculiarly spiritual or religious, must re- strain him. He must go down freely into the midst of life, and nothing must escape him that seriously af- fects the virtue of society. The power which the preacher might exert on the public welfare, is as yet but little known. One day in seven given up to him ; ten thousand pulpits in this land opened to him ; so many posts in a country to hold it against its moral enemies such an array of force, were it wisely exert- ed, might stand against all dangers, and ensure the national intelligence, virtue and piety. But there is still another and more subtle foe to the practical efficiency of our religion ; and that is found in the prevailing idea of its nature. The constitution of the church, the character of the pulpit, have their 20 230 THE CONSERVATIVE PRINCIPLES influence, and it is great. But there is, more deeply embedded in the very heart of society, the conception, that religion does not consist in the practical, every day virtues justice, honesty, brotherly kindness, gen- tleness, candor and truth but that it consists essen- tially in a certain peculiar state of the affections, an acquiescence of the heart in a particular plan of salva- tion, the consummation of a special process of expe- rience, the result, in short, of a miraculous conversion. Other things, indeed, follow from religion ; but this is religion itself. I have weighed every word I have now uttered, with unfeigned anxiety to do no injustice to the popular sentiment. And I do not object, let it be observed, that this process and these peculiarities should be considered as occasional appendages of real piety and goodness, but only that they should be re- garded as its essence. And that they are so regarded, the answer of three persons out of every four you meet, will show you. If you question them as to their religious character, you will find that is made by them to depend on these points. The question with them will be about a time and a process, a despair and a hope, a conviction and a conversion. The main stress of their anxieties will rest upon these points. They will not ask themselves, whether they are now honest and upright, temperate and forbearing, kind-hearted and true ; but whether at a particular time they have had a particular experience, and whether they have kept up the feeling of that experience all along till now. I have entered farther than I intended into this dis- tinction ; but it is, indeed, most vital to the bearings of religion on society. For is it not perfectly evident, that in proportion as too much stress is laid upon the OP SOCIETY. 231 points just noticed, too little will be laid upon the vir- tues of social and private life ? This, I apprehend, is the grand defect of the religion of our country. There is much religion among us, and, I believe, that it is in- creasing. So far all is well, is cheering. Would that it were all sound, rational and true ! It is possible, in our religion, to give an undue prom- inence even to the purest spirituality and piety ; and thus, to give too little space to the social virtues. There is one piece of sacred history that most em- phatically teaches us on this point. David was a most devout man ; his writings show it ; and this, I sup- pose, is what is meant by his being called " a man af- ter God's own heart." And yet he was guilty of some of the most heinous social offences on record. And this is not a solitary instance. Your own observation, perhaps, might furnish some sad examples of this tre- mendous error. Some of the most devout men that ever I have known I say not that they were hypo- crites men, as I believe, of sincere though erring pi- ety and prayer, were, in their social relations, some of the worst men that I ever knew. What does the whole history of religion, Pagan, Popish and Protestant, more clearly show, than this exposure ? Men have worship- ped God, and, at the same time, hated, persecuted, cast out, crushed and destroyed their fellow-men. It was against this error that an apostle set himself, when he said, "he that loveth not his brother whom he hath seen, how doth he love God whom he hath not seen !" For the improvement of society, then, we want a religion of society. We want a religion that comes home to the heart in all its affections ; that touches all the relations of husbands and wives, parents and 232 THE CONSERVATIVE PRINCIPLES children, brothers and sisters, friends and associates, We want a religion for business and for amusement, for public office and private duty, for every social act that a man can perform whether he gives his suffrage, or decides questions in a court of justice, or dispenses wealth in hospitality, or sits at the frugal board of humble poverty. We want a religion of kindness, and gentleness, and generosity, and candor, and mod- esty, and forbearance, and integrity, and self-respect, and mutual respect. And let me add for my own defence, that we want a religion that will speak of all these things. I know very well, that some of the topics which I am discus- sing in this series of discourses, have fallen upon ears quite unaccustomed to hear such things from the pul- pit. I know that some persons will consider many of these matters as having nothing to do with religion, and quite out of place in the pulpit. Most earnestly do I protest against this conclusion. What was the example of the great Master ? Did he show any of this modern fastidiousness about preaching? How free and natural and various was his manner ! how unrestrained his discourse ! Though delivering words of inspiration, which were to be recorded for the in- struction of all ages, though constantly engaged in the highest mission ever fulfilled on earth, though sur- rounded by the watchful eyes of jealous and formal Pharisees, yet there was no staid or affected solemnity in his discourse ; he addressed himself to every case, availed himself of every incident around him ; the homes of Judea rise before us as we read him ; her rulers, her judges, her political condition, her social state, all have a place in his teachings and warnings ; OP SOCIETY. 233 there was not a topic within the range of moral influ- ence to which he did not freely apply himself. Upon the authority of that great example, I claim a right here, in the Church of Christ, to speak of every thing that af- fects the moral, the vital welfare of the people. I have a contest here with error, with sin and misery. I do not want any technical system of theology to tell me what they are. I know what they are. If I had never heard of any creed or system, I should just as well know what sin and misery are. I know what they are, and where they are. I see them, I feel them, all around me. And so seeing and feeling, I must have liberty to speak to them to go where they are to go wherever a free discourse upon them, will carry me ; without stopping to inquire whether it is beyond the artificial pale of what is called a sermon. You may call the commu- nication by whatsoever name it pleases you to char- acterize it. Say, if you choose, that it is not a sermon ; call it an oration, a speech, an address ; but if it an- swers its purpose, if it opens to you a wider range of duties, if it spreads the feeling of conscience over a larger field of life, I shall be satisfied. That heavy and dull word, sermon with a thousand formal and lifeless pictures of association, stamped upon it is, I fear, a shackle to many preachers and a stone of stumbling to many hearers and such an one as pre- vents many from hearing at all. Let it be a free, nat- ural, manly address to the people, on their most vital interests ; and it would be a different thing different to many hearers and very different with many preachers. And such is the proper office of preaching. It is a simple address to the people, and upon their most vital interests. And in saying this, in defending the 20* 234 THE CONSERVATIVE PRINCIPLES, &C. position which I now take, I am not wandering at all from the leading subject on which I am engaged the influence of religion upon our social and national wel- fare. This is precisely what we want that the preacher should come out from his set forms, his tech- nical themes and monotonous tones, and speak freely of every thing of every thing that morally concerns the people, as if he spoke for his life, or for the life of his friend. And it is for more than life that he speaks for the welfare of a whole mighty people, and of un- born generations. For that welfare of the people never did, and never can, depend upon any thing but its virtue and piety. This is the only hope of future times. Yes, the presence of God must be among us that pillar of cloud and pillar of fire must accompany the march of coming generations, or they will wander, and be lost like the nations that have ceased to be. My friends, our work on earth will soon be done. That mighty procession, ere long, will pass by our graves. What matter is it that we shall sleep in the dust, if our work is done and well done ; if we have helped to raise up in those that come after us, a mighty host of the intelligent, the virtuous, the happy and free ! This secured and I see, in prospect, a land of peace and prosperity, a land of churches, and temples of science, and towers of strength ; and the progress of the coming generations shows like a glorious tri- umph. Fair flowers shall be strewed in their path ; bright omens shall cheer them on ; they shall fulfil the prayers of the pious dead ; they shall reward the tears and blood of martyred patriots ; they shall ac- complish the hopes of abased, broken, and prostrate humanity ! 235 DISCOURSE X ON WAR. ECCLESIASTES IX. 18. Wisdom is better than weap- ONS OF WAR. My subject this evening is war ; and my purpose is to consider it as an immense social evil, and one which the rising spirit of modern society is likely to control. The connection between the two subjects is too obvious to be insisted on. But the system of war is connected with the great interests of society, in one way which, though less obvious, is, perhaps, more im- portant than any other I mean by the accumulation of national debts. War not only consumes the pres- ent possessions of mankind, but it uses up in advance, the property of future generations ; it lays a burthen of taxes upon ages to come. How great this bur- then is, and in how many ways it presses upon the so- cial happiness and improvement of the world, are sub- jects, I think, which have not yet been sufficiently con- sidered. But before I enter upon the general subject of the social evils produced by war, let me undertake briefly to state the ground I take with regard to it. I do not say then, in the first place, that war, under all circumstances, is wrong. A war, strictly defen- 236 ON WAR. sive, I hold, is right. But very few wars, I believe, will be found to possess this character. Yet when such a case does occur, I do not believe that any nation is obliged to sit still, and see its fields ravaged and its homes violated, without lifting an arm in resistance. The right which nature gives us of personal self-de- fence, extends, I conceive, to the relations of states and kingdoms. If I may break the arm of a ruffian who lifts a club to destroy me, I may go farther, if neces- sary I may break both his arms ; and so long as he has a limb or a sense which can aid him to inflict upon me the evil he meditates, I may disable it ; and thus I may go on defending myself, till the assailant himself is destroyed, So also may I defend others, whose life is committed to my protection. I should be a rnonr ster and not a man, if I could sit still, and see a sav- age enter my doors and murder my family before my eyes. But that savage or that ruffian, is precisely the representative of an invading army. Nor do the Scriptures, justly construed, speak any other language. They command us indeed but it is with the evident language of strong hyperbole they command us, when smitten on one cheek, to turn the other, when robbed of our coat, to give our cloak, when compelled to go a mile, to go twain ; and, in fine, not resist evil, but to return good for evil; the sum of which is, that we are not to retaliate evil. No reason- able person can suppose it to be literally meant, that we are to resist not at all ; that when a rude assailant thrusts his hand in our face, we should not endeavor to put it aside ; nay, that we should help him and give him every facility, to work his brutal will upon us. Angry retaliation is forbidden, not mild and manly self-de- ON WAR. 237 fence ; and this distinction applies alike to public wars and private conflicts. In the next place, I do not deny, that war has some- times developed powerful energies and heroic virtues. They furnish, indeed, but a slight compensation to hu- manity, for the sufferings of its slaughtered millions, they yield but a poor argument for war ; yet their ex- istence is not to be denied. The advocates of peace, I must think, have been too anxious to brand with dis- honor, every thing connected with national conflicts. Let mere mercenary soldiership, let the rage of brutal passions in a battle, let the ordinary principles of mar- tial ambition, be given up to their reprobation. But let not him who draws the sword for justice, when nothing else can secure justice, who offers his life for the freedom of a people, when no meaner sacrifice on its altar will suffice let not him be denied the virtue of heroism. Let not him who firmly takes his station before an invading foe ; who stands forward, and of- fers his breast a shield for helpless age and infancy, and the sanctity of a nation's homes let not him be denied the praise of magnanimity. Of those, indeed, who make war their trade and boast and pleasure, a different judgment is to be formed. But if a hostile army were landed on our shores, and I saw the youth of a peaceful village hurrying from their homes to prepare for the dread encounter of arms ; if I saw them mustering on some green spot, which they had trodden lightly on many a gay and peaceful holiday, but which they now trod with the step of brave and beautiful manhood abjuring all soft- ness, all fondness girding on the armor of battle and sadly but sternly resolved to sacrifice that young 238 ON WAR. life in its first freshness, to save their household altars from violation if I saw them stand there, as they have stood in the valleys of Switzerland and on the plains of America, resolute and firm, with flushed cheek and unflinching brow, ready to do what God and their country should demand of them, I should feel that I looked upon a noble spectacle. And when that good- ly band returned from the conflict, broken, alas ! and shattered loud and grateful should be a nation's wel- come ; and green should be the sod and wet with pa- triot tears, that covered the fallen ; and high should rise the monument to tell to other days, of brave men who feared not to die for justice and freedom ! Life indeed is dear, and the probation of human souls is not to be lightly shortened ; but we are not to forget that that probation may sometimes be wrought out through blood, and that there are things dearer than life things, to which life may be well sacrificed, whether in labors of philanthropy, in the fires of martyrdom, or in the strife of battle ! These are qualifications which I think we ought to make in considering the subject of war. It is not of a war of self-defence, or for the defence of freedom, that I am about to speak ; but of war in its ordinary character, where the impulse is mutual national hatred or jealousy, and the object something far short of the freedom, safety or essential welfare of any people. The qualifications I have made, therefore, will very little affect the general estimate. To that estimate, I now proceed, and particularly with reference to its bearing upon the social welfare of mankind. But I wish to invite your attention, in the first place. ON WAR. 239 to the peculiar, the extraordinary character of this ter- rific dispensation of misery. The history of the human race presents us with many things to wonder at, with things that bear the character of extravagance, absurd- ity, and almost of insanity; but it presents us with no- thing so amazing as the system of war. It appears, sometimes, in surveying this part of his- tory, as if the most settled and established principles were failing us ; and we are tempted to ask Is hu- man happiness worth the price at which it is common- ly estimated ? Is it, in fact, worth any thing ? If it is, what are we to think of a vast and porten- tous science and system ordained for its destruction ? Other calamities come upon us by means that are in- direct and unforeseen, and often irresistible. They lie in wait for us, and smite us unawares ; or they follow us at a distance, and overtake us at an hour when we think not. They steal upon the path of indolence ; they rush upon the footsteps of improvidence ; they overwhelm the victim of indulgence in the very house, the guarded home of his pleasures. But what destroy- ing power, what angel of death, besides war, has gone forth in the sight of all men, and marked and measured out the field of destruction, and bared the human breast, shrinking, as it naturally does, from every wound bared it to a shock like that of battle ? Other evils there are, and enough of them, to which the human race must submit. They lurk in the tainted breeze and in the most secret channels of life, in pains which no weapon inflicts, and in sufferings which no sympathy can relieve. But war is like none of these. And even of those calamities which men bring upon themselves, not one, in the treatment of it, bears any 240 ON WAR. comparison with this. The cup of excess has, indeed, slain as many as the sword of violence. But when was ever a sijstem devised, to facilitate and extend the rav- ages of intemperance ? When was ever a book writ- ten, when did human ingenuity ever deliberately set itself to plan the means by which intemperance could kill the greatest number ; by which it could inflict a yet more insufferable degradation ; by which it would widen and deepen the tide of misery ? Nay, and even in those cases where mischief and misery have been reduced to a system and trade, the system has been taught, and the trade has been carried on, silently and secretly. Gaming-houses, and houses of yet darker ignominy, have been builded,it is true, and books have been written, to teach the desperate practice of the one, or to lure to the deadly haunts of the other ; but over all these works of darkness, a veil like that of midnight has been drawn, to hide them from the pub- lic eye. But there is one theatre, where death stands unveil- ed, and " destruction has no covering ;" where they do their fearful work, not only designedly but openly ; and with such credit, too, that that theatre is called the field of honor. There, men are not only destroyed in troops, in battalions and armies, but they are destroy- ed by system, and killed by science. Yes, and for this field, weapons are skilfully prepared, and actors are adroitly trained ; and that, too, at establishments which, even in a time of peace, cost tenfold more than all the universities and hospitals and beneficent asylums in the world. War, in fact, is among the recognized arts that engage the attention of mankind. But while, of all other arts, the design is, to save and to bless, to im- ON WAR. 241 prove and to delight ; this is emphatically the art of destruction ; to crush and to kill, to lay waste king- doms, to spread havoc and distress among nations this is its chosen work. Were the art brought to still greater perfection, to that horrible perfection indicated by some late experiments, and were some machinery, some " infernal engine" invented, by whose tremendous discharge a whole army might be destroyed in a mo- ment, success in tactics like this, might open the eyes of the world to the enormity of the martial principle. Then might war, at last, after having for ages ranged through the earth, desolating empires and destroying generations, become its own destroyer. But no such fortunate catastrophe has yet come. Still war rages, with a violence only too impotent either to satisfy the passions of men on the one hand, or, on the other, to destroy itself. If we must judge from the history of the last fifty years, civilization has not weakened its power. If it has done something to tame the fierceness of anger and revenge, it has more than balanced the account by the invention of deadlier engines. Europe never saw such bloody fields of bat- tle, as within the last fifty years. But let us further and more distinctly, contemplate the immediate evils and sufferings produced by war. The great difficulty about this subject is, that no such contemplation is likely to be given to it. Nobody seems to stand in the relation to it which is necessary to a fair and full estimate. From those engaged in war, blinded or absorbed by it, its true character is hidden ; and to those in the bosom of peace, the con- templation of bloody conflicts and routed armies is scarcely more affecting, than to behold the dashing 21 242 ON WAR. clouds and broken fragments of a dispersing storm in the sky ; it is far off, and belongs to another element. But let a man bring home to him one single instance from that awful and uncounted aggregate of horrors, and how can he be unmoved by it ! Death ! come when and where it may, be it on the bed of down, or on the supporting bosom of affection it is an awful visitation. The agonies and shudderings of nature proclaim it to be the great trial-hour of human desti- ny. But that hour, in the hot assault, or amidst the lingering agonies of the battle-field, or where the groans of the crowded hospital are its harbingers how does it come ? No pillow of down, no supporting arms are there, to receive the victim ; no kind voice speaks to him; no noiseless step of affection approaches, nor looks of love hang over him, like a pitying angel's coun- tenance ; but he goes down man as he is, with all a man's sensibility, it may be with all a man's ties to earthly home and love he goes down amidst groans and execrations and horrors, darker than the shadow of death that is passing over him. This is but one death, such as war visits upon the human race, and yet it would not be in human nature actually to witness one such instance, without the most agonizing desire to afford relief. But now what facts are those, which the history of war unfolds to us ! The single campaign of Bonaparte in Russia, carried death, and such death, not to one thousand, nor to five thousand, nor to fifty thousand, but to five hundred thousand human beings. Alexander and Cesar, it is computed, caused, each of them, the death of two millions of the human race ; and the wars of Bonaparte bring up the whole num- ber of victims sacrificed to the ambition of three ON WAR. 243 men, to six millions ! Let us look at it. Six millions of human beings ! the aged, the young, the manly and strong, the fair and lovely, the imploring mother, the innocent child and death, dealt to each one, without discrimination and without mercy ! Six millions ! a number equal to half the population of this whole coun- try. Strike off, then, half of the territory and people of this fair and happy land, and suppose them to be sacrificed one by one, their possessions, their goods and their lives, with every species of cruelty and insult, and with the perpetration of every nameless horror ; and to whom sacrificed ? To but three ministers in the dark kingdom of war ! But this is only an item, a sin- gle passage in the history of its fearful dominion. There have been in Christendom, since the reign of Constantine, nearly three hundred wars!* What a mass of calamities, of rapine and violence, of crime and misery, is included within the brief description of these three w r ords what waste of the treasures of na- tions, what wo in the abodes of millions, it passes all human power to calculate. But all this, nevertheless, has been experienced, though it cannot be calculated or imagined. Human hearts have felt it all. Not one drop of this ocean of ills, but has fallen, a burning drop, upon nerves and fibres that have quivered with agony at its touch. Fourteen centuries of war, and thous- ands of bloody battles, recorded in that brief descrip- tion, are but the record of human, of individual sorrows and tears and groans. I wish it were possible for me to make the case more apparent and palpable. That beings, possessed * See Third Report of the Committee of Inquiry instituted by the Massachusetts Peace Society. 244 ox war. with the most exquisite sensibility to grief and pain, should be able to look on, calmly or patiently, while such things are done and suffered, only proves that the reality of the evil is lost to them in its vastness. Any wound inflicted in our sight, any pain depicted in the countenance of another, " any annoyance" in any " precious sense," fills us with solicitude and sympathy. The mother, in the midnight hour, steals to the couch of her child, if but a harder breathing invade " the in- nocent sleep." The child hangs over the couch of in- firm and reverend age, with a filial piety that counts every pain, as an holy thing. The friend sits through the live-long night, with watchful eye and ear, to anti- cipate the slightest want of a sick and suffering asso- ciate. These are but the dictates of humanity. Where are those dictates, when a system is fostered and hon- ored in the world, which tears shrieking children from their arms to be murdered by a brutal soldiery, which tramples the aged and venerable head beneath the feet of lawless strangers, and from whose wide theatre are for ever rising groans that are unpitied, and cries that bring no aid. " On one side," says an eye-witness to the horrors of the sack of Moscow, in 1812, "on one side, we saw a son carrying a sick father ; on the oth- er, women who poured the torrent of their tears on the infants whom they clasped in their arms. Old men overwhelmed by grief still more than by years, weep- ing for the ruin of their country, lay down to die, near the houses where they were born. No respect was paid to the nobility of blood, to the innocence of youth, or to the tears of beauty."* " It is impossible," says another eye-witness, one who saw the wounded in the * Labaume, p. 209 and 213. ON WAR. 245 hospitals after the battle of Waterloo, " it is impossible to conceive of their sufferings. Turn which way I might, I encountered every form of entreaty from those, whose condition left no need of words, to stir compas- sion. I know not," he says, " what notions my feeling countrymen have of thirty thousand wounded men, thrown into a town and its environs. They still their compassionate emotions, by subscriptions ; but what avails this to those, who would exchange gold for a bit of rag to bind up their smarting wounds. My heart sickens at the contemplation," he says in conclusion, " and I am obliged to turn away from this picture of human misery, caused by pride, ambition, a love of military glory, and the folly of mankind in paying ado- ration to their destroyers. Would not angels weep at such a scene as this ? But is this all ? Ah ! no. Each of these dead or wounded soldiers had a mother, who had watched over his cradle, and had attended him in his sickness, and shed over him the tears of ma- ternal solicitude. Many had wives and lovers, to whom they were dearer than the light of the sun. Ma- ny had children, who looked to them for support and protection. We may rationally suppose, that for every man who was killed or wounded in this deadly con- flict, the hearts of at least ten persons parents, wives, children, brothers and sisters were lacerated. Oh ! what hecatombs of sacrifices on the bloody altar of Moloch ! How long will mankind continue to be acces- sary to such crimes, by bestowing praises upon their per- petrators \ How long will it be, ere every human being will deem it his imperious and solemn duty, to dissemi- nate the principles of Peace and extend her empire !"* * Charles Bell. 21* 246 ON WAR. But let us pass now from immediate evils to those which, although more remote, are not less destructive to the welfare of society. In contemplating the progress of civilization, there is one fact, which deserves more attention, I appre- hend, than it has yet received ; and that is the severi- ty of human labor. The advancement of society from a state of barbarism is, of course, marked by grow- ing and more regular industry. To a certain extent, this is, doubtless, natural, and accordant with the de- signs of Providence and the general welfare of men. But there is a point beyond which labor is not good and ought not to be necessary ; and that the condition of multitudes, both in Europe and America, is far be- yond this point, cannot, I think, be doubted. It has been maintained, on a careful calculation, that all: the conveniences of civilized life might be produced, if so- ciety would divide the labor equally among its mem- bers, by each individual being employed in labor two hours during the day.* I will not undertake to say whether this estimate is correct ; but I am certain that ten, twelve and fourteen hours, each day, of hard work, cannot be necessary to the proper ends of society, in its natural and healthful state. Yet this is what is re- quired of the mass not only of adult laborers, but of their children too, in many cases, barely to support life. The effects, especially, in the manufacturing dis^ tricts of Europe, are most deplorable. The evidence on this point, before the British parliament, three or four years since, presented a picture of desolating and crushing toil, and especially of children, pale, emacia-> * GoocUyin's Political Justice. ON WAR. 247 ted, trembling from exhaustion, and bereft of every trait of childhood, and almost of humanity, that was enough to make the heart sick with the contemplation ; and all the mitigation that the wisdom and generosity of a great people could devise for these helpless and miserable beings, cursed I had almost said coned with existence, was, that they should not be compelled under the age of sixteen, to work more than ten hours a day. But the evil of excessive toil, is not confined to the manufactories. Noone can travel through the agricultural districts of Europe generally, without see- ing that it is not only in "the sweat of his brow," but in the sadness of his brow, that man earns his bread. The pressure is, doubtless, lighter in this country, but still, I believe, it is too hard. I concern myself here with no questions about combinations of laborers, to diminish the hours of work ; I do not undertake to say, what may be necessary or right, in the existing state of things ; but speaking in general, of what I conceive to be the intentions of Providence and the capacities of man, I aver with confidence, that there is more hard labor in this country, than consists with the true wel- fare and improvement of society. If this could be doubted, it would be sufficient to say* and this is the point to which I wish to come, that there are causes in operation enhancing human toil, which are immense, which are unnatural, and which never ought to have existed. Passing by others, my busi- ness now is, to consider a single cause the burthen of debt, that is to say, which past wars have accumu- lated upon the present generation, and upon many, we may add, that are to come after it. War subtracts from the amount of productive labor, 248 ON WAR. the strength of all who are engaged in its actual ser- vice, and of all who are engaged in providing arms and munitions for it. In barbarous ages, when na- tions fought out their own battles and so finished the account, this was only a loss to the nation and to the world, for the time being. But in process of time, men found that they could not fight enough on their own account, and they brought in the resources of after times to assist them. It was left for the progress of civilization, to fall upon the Expedient of creating na- tional debts ; that is, of hiring out the labor of posteri- ty to pay the price of blood. Some idea of the ex- tent of this tremendous assessment, may be formed from a single item. The wars which grew out of the French Revolution, commencing in 1793 and ending in 1815, cost Great Britain alone, eleven hundred mil- lions of pounds sterling ;* and a large proportion of this stupendous amount now exists in the form of a national debt, and the interest of it is annually levied upon the entire industry of the kingdom. In addition to this, England and all Europe are supporting im- mense standing armies. Go where you will, and the soldier presents himself a cormorant that is eating up the substance of the land, and adding nothing to its re- sources. There he stands, idly leaning against some bastion or gate-way, while the farmer in the neighbor- ing field, must redouble his labors to support him. I complain not of the soldier, who is, after all, the most miserable of these parties ; insomuch, that I have heard it stated, as the opinion of a distinguished mili- tary commander in Europe, that war itself is not so * Lowe's Present State of England. ON WAR, 249 fatal to life as peace that ennui destroys more men than the sword ; I do not complain, then, of the sol- dier who is the creature of the state ; I do not com- plain of the state which is, .perhaps, obliged thus to stand on its defence ; but I charge the system, the war- system, which taxes and tasks the industry of one part of the world for the purpose of destroying the other, with stupendous injustice and folly. Let us dwell a moment longer, on the extent and nature of this taxation. War appears to be far off from us ; and it is far off from most men ; for the field of actual military oper- ations, in almost any country, is comparatively small. A battle is fought at a distance, and the groan that it sends through the world soon dies away ; and men think of it no more, but as a matter of history a matter with which they have no concern. They for- get that the war, the battle, comes to them in another shape, in the form of burthensome imposts ; that it comes and writes its account on every threshold, and on every table whether rich or poor, in the civilized world. For every article, whether of convenience or luxury, which is produced in Europe, the consumer, of whatever country, is obliged not only to remuner- ate the labor employed upon it, but to pay a heavy additional per cent in taxes ; and far the largest por- tion of these taxes are levied by the military system. The language of every military government, not only to its own citizens, but to all the world is this ; " you must not only pay the industrious among us, but you must help to support our idle and expensive soldiery ;" that is to say, " you must work harder, because we have a great many among us who do not work, and 250 ON WAR. then, too, they must have arms and munitions and for- tifications, which is another heavy item in the account." " Does this taxation do us any good ?" the world asks. And the answer is, " none at all." It contributes not to the manufacture of any necessaries or comforts or luxuries of life, but only to the fabrication of warlike weapons of " cold and bare steel " of that which gives you nothing to eat nor to drink, nor to wear, nor to employ for any useful purpose. And again, it con- tributes nothing to the support of any useful class of learned men, or instructors of the people, or artists to delight them ; but only to the training of an order of men, who for your pains may, any day, be turned upon you like tigers and bloodhounds, to rend and tear you in pieces. And now look at the pressure of this sys- tem. It is a burthen upon every thing to which men can attach value. It is a tax upon all the possessions and pleasures of life, upon food and raiment, upon every element of nature, upon the very light of heav- en. It presses upon you, and upon me. But for this, our labors might contribute in much greater measure to our comfort and independence ; in a measure very seriously and sensibly affecting the happiness of our lives. It is a burthen which presses heavily on the rich ; it is a burthen which crushes the poor. It is urging universal toil to excess ; it is grinding thousands and millions down to the dust : and in this way, per- haps, it has occasioned more of the extraordinary in- temperance of modern times, than any other cause, If this tax were direct and specific, if it were not cov- ered up under the names of excise and impost and revenue ; if it were, in so many words, a war-tax, it would speak a language to which the world could not ON WAR. 251 be indifferent. It would be a voice of blood crying from the earth and air, from sea and land, to which men could not close their ears. But consider for one moment longer, I beseech you, the nature of this assessment. In the name of heaven, I solemnly ask, what are its conditions? What is the tenor of the bond, that is to settle up the account of an expensive war ? A mighty debt is incurred ; and it presses upon the already hard and exhausting labor of thousands and ten thousands, with vexatious and wear- ing importunity. What is the valuable consideration which is to reconcile to their lot, the worn and weary victims of this toil and poverty ? What is the language to them of the war-system ? It says to them this is what it says " I will raze to the ground your pleasant habitations ; I will slay your sons in battle ; I will give up your daughters to accursed violation ; I will spare no store of your gains, no treasure of your hearts, no delight of your eyes ; and when I have done all this, you shall pay me for what I have done ; and to satis- fy the debt, you shall come under bondage to me, for a portion of every day, during the remainder of your lives. Nay, and more than this shall you give ; more than the toil of your weary limbs and the sweat of your aching brow. The light from your window, and the pottage from your cold hearth ; the sorrow of your suffering wives and children, the tears of your half- clad and starving families, shall you give to pay the mighty debt." It is sometimes asked, whether wars can ever be done away. I would ask in return, if the very argu- ment I have now used does not show that they can, and must, and shall be done away. 252 ON WAR. There is, I know, a vague and dreamy notion pos- sessing some minds, that war, somehow or other, is a matter of necessity, that it results from the ordination of nature, that the law of force is the law of the whole creation, and must be submitted to. Among animals, they say, the stronger destroys the weaker, and man but conforms to the principle. But the instance of animal natures comes far short of supporting this argu- ment. The animal destroys when and where, he has need of food ; and when he destroys without this mo- tive, he is accounted mad. But what should we think, if the animals of one whole country were banded in battle array against those of another? The world would stand aghast at such madness, seizing the tribes of irrational creatures. And yet, what in them, would be a horrible madness, is, in man, honor, courage, skill ; nay more, and is held to be among the necessary and irresistible tendencies of his nature. " But," it may be said, " whether natural and neces- sary or not, war has always existed ; it has been in the world, since the creation ; it has become the habit of the world ; and it cannot be done away. There will always be national controversies ; there will al- ways be selfish and vindictive passions at work in the human breast ; and, in short, while man is man, there will always be war." Do we live in an age, when the antiquity of an evil is held to be a good argument for its perpetuity ? Ar- bitrary rule, despotism, in one form or another, is as old as the world. The slave-trade has existed for ages. The most ancient histories, are histories of ig- norance and barbarism. Does the world sit down, and quietly acquiesce in the conclusion that these ON WAR. 253 tilings must exist for ever ? Civilization itself must have been held in check, by such a fatal concession to antiquity. Civilization is advancing ; it has as yet, by no means, reached its limit. Is not this a sufficient answer to the whole argument ? One barbarous custom after anoth- er has yielded to the progress of knowledge ; why may not war, like the tournament and the ordeal by fire, cease to engage the respect of mankind ? The habits of the world are not too strong to be contro- verted and corrected. But there is another point on which I intended especially to insist. There is one habit of the world, signalizing more than any other the present age, which, if it continues to gain strength, is almost certain to effect, sooner or later, the abolition of war. And that is the habit, which the people of all civilized countries are now acquiring, of looking so- berly and steadfastly to their own real interests. Let them look at these, and resolutely pursue them, and they must ere long banish the horrible custom which, every century, costs the lives of millions, and brings distress and anguish upon millions more. War may be the interest of ambitious rulers, but it never can be the interest of the body of the people. In connection with this point, let it be distinctly con- sidered, that public opinion is becoming the grand and paramount law of nations. It has always had great force. It has had great force even in the most des- potic states. But what distinguishes the present crisis is, that public opinion is becoming the absolute and universal law. The aim of all liberal minds, every where, is to make government the very expression of an enlightened public opinion. So it ought to be. 22 254 ON WAR. They ought to be represented by a government, their feelings and wishes ought to be respected, whose in- terests, whose life and property and happiness, are intrusted to that government to be benefited or injured by it. They ought to judge, their opinion ought to prevail, who are themselves the parties interested. But, now, what is public opinion 1 Not the opinion of ru- lers, not the opinion of military men, nor the opinion of a few whose interest it might be, or rather who might think it their interest, to plunge a nation into war ; but it is the collected opinion of the whole mass of a people ; it is an opinion to which both sexes con- tribute an influence, which springs from all the rela- tions and endearments of society ; it is an opinion, whose dwelling is the happy home, whose altar is the domestic hearth-stone. And is it possible, when this public opinion arrives at its proper ascendancy, that nations shall wish to lay open their peaceful villages and their happy homes to the invasion of fire and sword, and all the horrors of war ? Is it possible, that they will ohoose to suffer all this to gratify an insane, unnatural and merciless ambition which builds itself up upon their destruction ; whose monuments are heaps of the slain ; whose tower of pride is built of human bones, and cemented with the blood of breth- ren and the tears of widows and orphans ; whose shrine of glory, like that of Moloch, for ever demands human none but human victims? Can men, when once they begin to think, bear all this, and above all can they bear it, when they see that it answers no use- ful purpose, when they find that negociation is just as necessary after the conflict as it was before, when they find that nothing is gained for abstract justice, and ON WAR. 255 every thing is lost to social life, to vital prosperity, to domestic happiness. Look at two nations dwelling in amity with each other ; each land filled with cities and temples, with smiling villages and peaceful dwell- ings, the homes of centuries. Behold the thousand paths of industry and enjoyment, whether upon the hill-side or upon the gliding river's bosom, thronged with the prosperous and happy. Hear the song of the reaper in the harvest-field answering joyously to the call of the herdsman in the pasture ; and if a sigh ariseth by the way-side, mark the ready ear of the kind and gentle to listen to it. Survey, in short, the lot, and be it, that it is the mingled lot of life, joyous or sad. but ever dear and holy. Trace, in fine, the in- visible bond of sympathy, that binds home to home and heart to heart, and gaze upon the broad land and its many shores, where the light of Peace falls upon every field and every wave to hallow it, as it were, with the serenest and the sweetest smile of heaven. Now, I ask, if, for a controversy about a tract of land, or a contested right in a fishery, or an affront offered to an ambassador, the people of these countries not their rulers as independent of them but if the people, ex- pressing their will through governments of their own choice, can be disposed to enter into war ; to drive the ploughshare of ruin, through all these peaceful and happy scenes ; to turn the joyous songs of ten thous- and dwellings into sighing and wailing ; to plant the bloody step on every green turf, and to thrust the viola- ting hand into the retreats of every domestic sanctuary. It cannot be. Men cannot be for ever so insane, as to treat their dearest interests in this manner. At any rate, if the tendencies of public sentiment, at this day, 256 OK WAR, hold out any warrant, if the hopes of philanthropy and piety are not mere illusions, if the ways of God's prov- idence are not darkened with a cloud that is never to clear up, the time must come, the time will come, when wars will cease. As certainly as popular governments are to rise in the world, wars are to decline. And they are to rise : I say not in what form, but in some form by which they shall express the will of the people. If there ever was a tendency in human affairs, the tendency of all opinion, of all moral action, of all instruments and agencies in the world, is to this result. And when it is obtained, it may be relied on for the establishment of some new and more rational mode of settling na- tional controversies. I say not what it may be in form. It may be by arbitration, by resorting to umpires, or by creating a Court of Nations. But whatever be the mode, I look to an intelligent and moral public opinion for the fulfilment of that great prophecy, that men u shall beat their swords into ploughshares, and their spears into pruning-hooks, that nation shall not lift up sword against nation, and they shall learn war no more." 257 DISCOURSE XI ON POLITICAL MORALITY. PROVERBS XIV. 34. Righteousness exalteth a nation, BUT SIN IS A REPROACH TO AN If PEOPLE. There is a branch of morality, seldom discussed in the pulpit, too seldom discussed out of it, which I shall propose for your consideration this evening ; it is po- litical morality. It will not be thought, I trust, that any apology is due from the pulpit for taking up this subject. If the duty which one man owes to another, then the duty which each man owes to a whole coun- try, is worthy of the most religious consideration : and the more so, because it is not only an important but a neglected subject. Indeed, one is tempted to ask scarcely with irony is there any such subject, any such thing, as political morality ? There is a law of nations, binding them to perform certain duties to each other. There is a law of the land, binding upon the citizens of each particu- lar nation. There is a law of morality, penetrating deeper into the life and heart, than judicial law can go. But is there any thing of this, or any thing like this, applicable to politics? On the contrary, are not political relations entirely severed from the ob- ligations of conscience ? Into almost every part of a 22* 258 ON POLITICAL MORALITY. man's life conscience may look, ay, and with an eye of authority ; but with the part which he acts as a poli- tician, is it not true, that conscience has no business whatever ? As a man, he is bound to be a good man ; and in that character, he is amenable to the judgment of God. As a man, he is bound to be honest, candid, high-minded and true ; but would it not be quite pre- posterous to demand this of him, as a president, a gov- ernor, a diplomatist, a party-man, an opposition man ? In a party conclave, you can easily conceive that ques- tions may be discussed on grounds of policy ; but would it not be quite surprising, if not ridiculous, for a man to get up and say, " is this right ? is it conscien- tious ? is it a high-minded course ?" Would not the look of silent astonishment, in such a conclave say, as plainly as any thing can say " that is another question V* " Speak not evil one of another," is a holy precept ; but can it be that it has any relation to newspapers ? Es- pecially in a warm party contest, as in a battle, are not all laws of mutual forbearance and kindness, abroga- ted ; and is not the only consideration then, how to strike down an adversary ? May not a man do things and avow principles then, which would disgrace him in the ordinary walks of life ? May he not violate the law, by bringing minors and non-residents to vote 1 May he not give and take bribes ? Nay, may he not lift his hand to heaven, and perjure himself in such a cause ? In fine, will not the end sanctify the means ? It is a very bad principle every where else ; but will it not do in politics ? The great modern master of dramatic representa- tion shows his nice observation of human nature, when in a case of false swearing, he makes a man say, " I ON POLITICAL MORALITY. 259 will swear to any thing : all is fair when it comes to an oath ad litem." That technical, and to him, unmean- ing phrase, is probably introduced by the writer, as serving the purpose of a salvo to his conscience; as helping to blind him to the iniquity of the transaction. And so it is with the technical word, politics. And men say, or act as if they said, " all is fair when it comes to politics." Even in Case of the oath, where- with a man perjures himself at the ballot what is it, that he says to himself, or that the partisan tempter, says to him ? " Oh ! it is nothing but an electioneering oath!" In other words, all is fair when it comes to politics. A part of the reason here involved, doubtless that is to say, a part of the reason why politics possess this morally loose character, lies in the vagueness of the term. The words, trade, bargain or the words, char- ity, philanthropy have a definite meaning affixed to them. But men cannot so readily tell what they mean by the word, politics ; and to this subject, therefore, it is less easy to apply the principle, of morality. Another reason, having a similar tendency to blind the mind to the necessary moral discriminations in po- litics, is to be found in the unusual modes and forms devised, for the expression of public opinion. If a man is false to his thought, when he professes to con- vey his thought in conversation, he at once feels that he is dishonest. He sees at once the contradiction be- tween what he says and what he thinks. But when he gives his vote at the ballot-box, or causes if to be recorded in a legislative assembly, it is comparatively an artificial act, and he does not so clearly perceive its character and relations. He does, indeed, in that act, 260 ON POLITICAL MORALITY. profess to declare an opinion he does profess to de- clare his mind but what is it, inform, to him? It is a vote, not an averment ; it is saying, " yea" or " nay/' not saying, " I believe," or " I do not believe." There is another consideration to be stated, of the same general and dangerous tendency. The action of men in masses always lessens the sense of individual responsibility. Thus, a mob will do things, which no individual of that mob would ever think of doing alone : and this, not because he could not do it alone ; for any man can break windows, or shoot down his ad- versary in the streets ; the truth is, the man loses in the crowd the sense of personal responsibility. And so it is with political combinations. A private man, a merchant or a lawyer, would feel degraded, if he should offer a bribe to induce his neighbor to express a favor- able opinion of him personally, or, if he should threat- en him with a loss of business for failing to do so ; but he will resort to either of these methods, for procuring the same expression of opinion towards some public man some politician, or party-man. I have thus been lead, briefly to state some of the causes of that separation of morality from politics, which obtains to a fearful extent in the public mind. No more than a bare statement of them is necessary to show, that they lack all proper grounds of justifica- tion for the result which they have produced, The way is open, therefore, for an attempt to settle some principles in the science of political morality. Political morality may be considered in relation, first, to particular actions which it enjoins or forbids, and secondly, to the general principles which it sanc- tions or disclaims. ON POLITICAL MORALITY. 261 Under the first head is to be ranked, the duty of giv- ing a vote at the elections. I hold, that it is the duty of every legally qualified person in the country to vote. And let it not be thought, that this point is any ways well settled in the public mind. Expedient it may have been thought, in some party emergency, that eve- ry citizen should vote ; and at such a crisis, that expe- diency may have been much talked of ; but all this is a very different thing from a sense of duty, which per- vades all times. The emergency passes, and this shal- low feeling of expediency passes away with it. It is the bond of duty to which I appeal. There are reasons for it, founded in the very nature and meaning of the action. Suffrage is the very basis of our government. The government in this country is committed to the whole people. Every man has a share in it. Every man exerts an influence upon it, either by his action or by his neglect. Can this be a case, then, in which a man is allowed to stand neutral ? In theory, the government here represents the whole people. The practice should conform to that theory. To every man among us, a certain political trust is committed. Every man should quit himself of that trust. If the administration of our affairs is corrupt or incompetent, the people is to blame the whole peo- ple. The blame is to be shared among them all. But especially does it attach to those who say that the gov- ernment is bad, and will do nothing to make it better. " Why stand ye idle, all the day V may it well be said to such. Why stand ye idle all the election^day ? When, on such a day, ye see the thousand and the mil- lion contributions that are made to swell the mighty stream of public opinion and government, why stand 262 ON POLITICAL MORALITY. ye idly gazing upon it, as if it did not concern you ? As well might ye stand idly gazing upon the streams collecting in the hills above your dwelling, which at any moment may come down, and sweep its founda- tions from beneath you. If it be said that that is unlikely to happen, then let me say in turn, and to keep the figure for a moment, that those streams will come down, either to fertilize or to waste the land ; and they shall be the power, ei- ther good or bad, to grind the very corn that feeds your families and your neighborhoods. If government does not make the corn grow, yet it touches every thing that affects its value labor, price, manufacture yes, it touches the very staff of life ; and that by many means, by many statutes, besides " corn-laws." Gov- ernment, then, is something that comes near to us. We greatly err, if we suppose, as many seem to do, that it is something factitious and far off. It comes near to us to our warehouses and our firesides, to our granaries and our kneading-troughs. Revenues and tariffs, banking-laws and the monetary system these terms may sound like a strange speech to the mass of the people ; but they represent, and they vi- tally affect, their daily and home-bred interests. And these interests, I say again, are committed to the whole people. They are directly affected by le- gislation certainly ; and legislation comes from the whole people. It is not with us as if our rulers were hereditary. Then we might fold our arms, and say, " it is none of our concern." And why ? Because in that case, we should not be the governors. But now we are the governors of the country. And if any por- tion of us if, for instance, a tenth part of our popula- ON POLITICAL MORALITY. 263 tion refuse to give due attention to this duty, it is as if the chosen governors of the countiy should withhold a tenth part of the talent or of the time due to their cffice. I do not demand of any one, that he should be an eager and noisy politician. I only demand that he should vote ; that he should, no matter how quietly, thus express his interest and take his share in the com- mon weal thus assume, what he professes to prize so highly, the privilege and duty of self-government. But I am obliged to say, and I hardly know whether it is with greater mortification or the more profound con- cern, that the very persons among us who are most apt to neglect this duty, are the very persons most of all bound to fulfil it I mean the rich and the educa- ted. It is a statement most fearful in its bearing on the prospects of the country, but it is true. I do not deny, that many of both classes are found at their posts, when their country calls upon them. But there are rich men, who are too much engrossed with their bu- siness to give their vote too much engrossed with gain to attend to their duty ; or who, perchance, are too fastidious, to expose their persons amidst the throng at the polls. And there are educated men, who are so much disgusted with party strifes, that they will have nothing to do with them. They give them up, as they scornfully say, to demagogues and brawlers. And so very simple are these sensible and refined per- sons, that they do not seem to perceive when they say this, that they are giving up their country to dema- gogues and brawlers. Yes, their country ! And here it is, too, on the very side where it most needs sup- port, that its legitimate defenders on that side, are open- 264 ON POLITICAL MORALITY. ing their ranks to the onset and the rushing crowd of popular ignorance and party violence. "Fools and blind !" would it be said, should they be overwhelm- ed by that crowd " that did not perceive that they too had interests at stake that very property, that very repose, which they so much valued. For when the crowd came, what did it find ? Not good and man- ly citizens at their post ; but only certain money-chan- gers in their counting-houses, or silken loungers in drawing-rooms, or certain learned monks in their clois- ters !" I do not fear any such violent and vandal in- cursion of popular ignorance and passion ; and yet, if any thing is to overwhelm the country, it will be this. If there is any one thing more to be feared than any other any one overshadowing peril to our political in- stitutions, it is, that numerical force will overbalance the intellectual and moral strength of the country. I say again, that I do not fear it except with that fear which bringeth safety. I do not fear it, because I trust that events are teaching intelligent and educated men their duties ; and because I believe, that into the numerical force, otherwise so much to be dreaded, there is a constantly increasing, and will be a still lar- ger, infusion of intelligence.* But if it shall be other- wise ; if population is to outstrip education ; if num- bers, and not principles, are to be the watch- words and war-cries of party, and the governing powers of the state, the dreaded result is inevitable. In connection with this topic, there is a question of- ten raised concerning a certain educated class in the * Not in cities perhaps, from temporary causes ; but in the country at large. ON POLITICAL MORALITY, 265 country, to which I shall give a moment's attention. This question is ought the clergy to vote ? And to this question, I firmly answer, yes ; always and every where. This is a right which they ought never to suf- fer to be drawn into debate. It is enough that they are, by public opinion, nearly disfranchised, and that absurdly enough, of their natural right to hold offices under the government.* We hear much of freedom, and invasions of freedom, in this country. What would any other respectable class of citizens say, if they were excluded from all active share and interest in the gov- ernment ? They would fill the country with their com- plaints, and the world would be called upon to look at this monstrous anomaly, in our free institutions. I shall be at no pains here to say, that the clergy proba- bly do not desire public employment. Whether they do or not, is not the question. I say that they have a right to it, as much as any other class. And the fre- quent language of reproach and satire heard, on every assumption of this right, I hold to be disgraceful to a free press and people. But the question now is about suffrage. And on this point, I maintain, that for the clergy to cast their vote with the rest of their fellow- citizens, at the elections, is not only their right, but their bounden duty. Nor should their congregations, in manly candor, ever desire to deprive them of this right, or to dictate to them in regard to the discharge of this duty. This is not a country a republican gov- ernment is the last in the world, that can afford to part with the influence of a large and intelligent body of its citizens. * They are so by law in some of the States. 23 266 ON POLITICAL MORALITY. I have dwelt longer than I intended upon this first and foundation principle of our political morality that which requires every legally qualified citizen to give his vote at the elections. There is another duty coincident with this, which is too obvious to call for much argument, and yet too often violated, to be pass- ed over in silence ; and that is the duty of giving an honest vote. Every citizen in this primary act that gives its be- ing and character to the government, is bound to ex- press his honest conviction. The vote demands the contribution of his mind, of his judgment, of his patri- otism and fidelity to the common weal. The citizen is the real governor. And if the elected ruler is for- bidden, by every just principle, to swerve from an hon- est purpose towards the public good, so is the ruling elector. And he who surrenders his judgment or con- science to private interest, or the mere dictation of a party ; he who accepts a bribe or offers one ; he who, in the ballot, smothers his own conviction, or attempts to coerce anothers, is perjured in the holiest rites with which he swears upon his country's altar. The familiarity with which certain transactions at the polls are spoken of yes, palpable infractions of the law with regard to the age, residence, and where a property qualification is required, the property of voters the freedom with which parties charge these practices upon each other after an election are facts of evil omen. And the common defence set up for them is, if possible, worse than the things themselves. The country, we are constantly told, is in danger; every nerve must be strained, every means used, to carry certain measures ; the opposite party leave no ON POLITICAL MORALITY. 267 means, however flagitious and desperate, untried, and we must meet them on their own ground must fight them with their own weapons. Admirable doctrine ! that goes around the whole circuit of parties, and lends a handle to each one, wherewith to push on the cu- mulative argument for dishonesty and intrigue ! The country in danger ! and to be saved by corruption ! by bribery, false swearing and the violated law ! The nation sick and prostrate by the tampering of some ig- norant administration with its health and vigor and how to be cured ? By the canker and the gangrene that are eating out its very vitals ! Away with such paltering and paltry arguments for the expedient against the right ! If it must be so, I had rather my country were destroyed by truth, than saved by falsehood. I would rather it were ruined by vir- tue, than redeemed by corruption. But do not the very terms of this statement show, that it is not so ? No ; " honesty is the best policy," for man or nation, for individual or party. But if honesty is any where to be demanded or expected, it is in the first act that gives its character to the government the elections. Admit any false principle there, and what, in consis- tency, can you look for, but a corrupt government ? Will you poison the fountain-head, and expect the streams to be pure ? I insist, then, that the elector shall be honest. He should no more dare to be false to his own mind, false to his conscience, in giving his vote, than he would in giving his word. His vote if his word ; and the only word, perhaps, that he can speak in the great ear of the nation. If that word is a lie, he sacrifices, as far as in him is, the right government and rectitude of the country. 268 ON POLITICAL MORALITY. We have now attended to one branch of our speci- fic political duties, the morality of elections binding every citizen to vote, and every citizen to vote honest- ly. The other department of specific morality, em- braces the duties of the elected of legislators and magistrates. And here I must confess, that the tone of public sen- timent on this subject the admission almost universal, that legislators and magistrates when elected will act, and must be expected to act, for sinister ends is one at which I tremble. If this charge were the offspring of mere party recrimination, I could understand it, and could look upon it with comparative indifference. But the truth is, that the charge has been bandied about, between parties, till it has become resolved into a gen- eral maxim, or a maxim, at least, of frightful preva- lence among the people. If the allegation were only, that every administration is liable to be corrupt, and does sometimes lean to party ends against such a fact, arising from the weakness of human nature, I could bear up. But when, by four out of five of all the men you meet, of all parties, it is sapiently or carelessly said, that " all is corrupt in the government ;" that " in Congress, of course, every thing is decided by party ;" that " the Capitol is but a scene of intrigue and cor- ruption ;" then is public virtue not only shaken, but it is sapped to the very foundation. And if something does not arrest this tendency of public sentiment, it is not too much to fear, that it will whelm the whole fabric in ruins. If virtue in a public man, is a thing alto- gether out of the calculation of his constituents ; if he is allowed to look upon his place only as a sphere of personal and party selfishness ; if single-minded prin^ ON POLITICAL MORALITY. 269 ciple, if single-hearted truth for the country, is thus mocked at by the people, and its possessor is lead to regard himself, as a prodigy or a fool for his honesty, what is to save the state all the barriers of virtue broken down from overwhelming corruption ? Is this general proscription of public men, just ? I deny that it is. If it were, then indeed, I should have nothing to say, but that which I shall directly attempt to say, in discharge of my conscience with regard to such high and heaven-daring iniquity. But I deny that the common, the too easy allegation against public men, is true. It may suit the impatience of disappoint- ed partisans, or the envy of inferior men, or the vanity of the all-knowing ones, or the too deep and habitual distrust of the national mind, to bring these sweeping accusations ; but I am persuaded, that there are men in our high places that ought to stand acquitted of them men to whom they are a heinous and cruel in- justice. I know that all are not corrupt ; that all are not gone out of the way. Mistaken they may be ; prejudiced they may be ; it is but human, to err ; but they are not all to be set down as dishonest men. I know this as well as I can know any fact of such a nature, I know it, because I know the men ; or be- cause, I know the character they have sustained, and still sustain, among their friends and neighbors. It is obviously, a most arbitrary and unwarrantable pro- ceeding, to charge upon public men as such, a worse character than upon the communities they represent ; to hold them, in virtue of their elevation, to be bad men ; to convert the shield of a goodly reputation, the moment the insignia of office are stamped upon it, into a target for universal abuse and opprobrium. 23* 270 ON POLITICAL MORALITY. But, on the other hand, when this treatment is de- served, when a man is false to the high trusts of ma- gistracy and legislation, when he makes of the greater trust only the greater argument for infidelity to the common weal, there is no language of reprobation too strong to visit upon him. Called by a whole district, perhaps, a whole country, to guard and promote its welfare presiding, alone or jointly, over the affairs and destinies of a whole people each one's interest involved, each one's interest dear and the interests of thousands, perhaps, of millions, uniting to lay upon him the bond of his great office if he can shake it from him easily, if he can snap it asunder as tow, and cast it aside as the rubbish of old and out-worn morality, I would he might know, in what tone the outraged con- science of a nation can speak. I would that the pub- lic bosom were taught to heave, and the public eye to flash upon him, with withering and crushing indigna- tion. It may be thought a light thing, and to little purpose, to say to the man, high in office, " you are bound by the laws of morality and honor, to_act faithfully for the country yes, and above all men bound." There may be some men of lofty station, and more than one such, who would smile at the simplicity of the appeal, and would imagine that it must come from some child, or from some scholastic and retired person, sadly igno- rant of the world. And if, yet more, the nobleness of his function were insisted on ; if he were admonished, that nothing on earth can approach so near to the be- neficent Divinity as a just and good government, watching over a great people, ministering to the secu- rity, comfort and virtue of millions he might regard ON POLITICAL MORALITY. 271 it as a picture drawn by some visionary dreamer. Is it so ? Is the adjuration of subject millions, appealing to their rulers is the good or the evil flowing down from them, through all the dwellings of a whole coun- try is the sighing and the crying that goes up from nations, asking ever asking for truth and justice in the high places of the world is all this to pass for vision- ary dreaming ? Not so ! Forbid it heaven ! Forbid it earth ! That profane trifling with the sanctitude of power that accommodating, detestable morality, that allows greatness to be a shield for injustice, and office an exemption from duty let all the world rise to for- bid. That humble ignorance should err, that burden- ed weakness should falter, that crushed poverty should swerve, may find some apology with man, some indul- gence with heaven : but lofty power but command- ing intellect but proud independence of the low wants of life these, if any thing, shall be held amenable to the moral judgment of mankind these, if any thing, shall stand confronted with the most awful accusations of human guilt, before the just and dread tribunal of God! I am sensible, that the discussion in which I have now engaged, of specific political duties, has already gone to the usual length of a public discourse ; but I must venture to beg your indulgence to a few closing remarks, of a more general character. For, I am not willing to leave the subject without showing, in the first place, that there is a lawful and useful sphere for those powers and principles, which are involved in the political action of a people ; or without pointing out, in the second place, the evil of pressing them beyond the bounds of a just morality. 272 ON POLITICAL MORALITY. In the first place, then, there is a lawful sphere for political and party action. Parties, as such, are not to be deprecated. Oppositions are not to he deprecated. Newspapers devoted to the maintainance of particular views, newspaper arguments, public speeches speech- es in caucus are not to be deprecated. They are all to be welcomed, they are all good, in their place. What is their place ? Let us consider it. Parties then, properly regarded, are founded on the different views that are unavoidably taken of public measures and public men. All men cannot think alike. Differences of opinion are inevitable. Parties then, are necessary. And they are useful. It is for the public advantage, that all questions touching the com- mon weal, should be freely discussed. The legitimate action of parties is, the embodied manifestation and ad- vocacy of their respective views of the public policy. This is their proper sphere ; and this is their proper limit. It is no part of their business to malign the mo- tives of each other, or to use immoral means for the advancement of their respective ends. And not only so, but it is peculiarly incumbent on these political combinations, if they would act an honorable part, to guard themselves from prejudice, passion and violence, from slander, intrigue and oppression. This may be accounted no better, I am sensible, than " the foolish- ness of preaching." It is the grave voice of political morality, and not of faction. But I cannot admit, that it is out of place here. I cannot believe, that all high principle is for ever to be excluded from politics. I have in my mind still, the beau ideal of a party-man, differ as it may from the common example. He is not a man to whom all opinions are indifferent ; and, there- ON POLITICAL MORALITY. 273 foii\ he is a party-man. He is a man who adopts an opinion and defends it. But then he is a man who stands up manfully and nobly to defend his opinion courageously and courteously to defend it honestly and candidly to defend it ; and he spurns the idea of misrepresenting either the argument or the character of his adversary. He cares more to be true to his own mind and conscience, than to any thing else. He guards his liberty from all party invasion ; for he will not be a machine. He takes care not to add to his own natural selfishness, the selfishness of ten thousand other persons for he will not be a blind leader of the blind. He is for his party, indeed ; but yet more for his country ; and for God above all. " God and my right," is the motto engraven on the arms of a king ; but upon his living bosom, is stamped the impress of a nobler motto " God, and my country !" There is also a theory of opposition to the govern- ment the beau-ideal of an opposition-man, which, it were to be wished, were more considered than it is. To pull down and destroy, is not in ordinary circum- stances, the legitimate end of an opposition. But it is to limit, to control, to correct, and thus ultimately to assist. It is not to look upon the government, as a hostile power that has made a lodgment in the coun- try, and is to be expelled by a party war ; but as a lawfully constituted power, that is to be watched, re- strained, and kept from going wrong. Still, it is the government of our country, and is to be respected. Still, it is the government of our country, and is to be regarded with a candid, and I had almost said, a filial spirit. Its officers are not to be assailed with scurri- lous abuse, nor its departments to be degraded by vile 274 ON POLITICAL MORALITY. epithets. There is a certain consideration and dignity to be preserved by an opposition. If not, if its spirit is altogether factious and fault-finding, if it rejoices over the errors of an administration, it so far loses all respectability : it shows, that it is not so anxious for a good government, as to be itself the government. Oppositions, then parties, party arguments and measures, all have their legitimate sphere. But now I say, in the second place, that when they transcend their sphere, when they overleap the bounds of mo- rality, they become engines of evil and peril to the country. The only sound and safe principle, I must continu- ally insist, is that which binds morals and politics in indissoluble union ; which admits of no compromise, exception or question ; which will hear of nothing as expedient, that is at variance with truth and justice. Politics are to have no scale of morality, graduated to their exigencies. That which is wrong every where else, is wrong here. That which is wrong for every other body of men, is wrong for a party. A bad man, in every other relation, is a bad man for the country. He may, indeed, chance to espouse some right meas- ure. But he who is devoid of all principle in private life, can give no satisfactory pledge, that he will be governed by any principle in public life. The evils of forsaking the moral guidance in politi- cal affairs, are various and vast, and they demand the most serious consideration. They more deeply con- cern the country, than any peril to its visible prosperi- ty. They are such, that they demand our most sol- emn meditation in our holiest Hours and places. The tendency of political action, when set free from ON POLITICAL MORALITY. 275 moral restraint, is to break down all personal indepen- dence in the country. Parties, then, demand, not honesty but service, of their votaries. Governments strengthen themselves by bribery and corruption. Oppositions take the same arms, and, in their hour of success, retort the same measures. Abuses become precedents, and precedents multiply abuses. Every new administration, every generation of politicians be- comes, not wiser, but worse than their predecessors, their fathers. The tendency of things, without moral restraint, is ever downwards. Already have we ar- rived at that stage of deterioration, when you will find many respectable and honest men in the country, blinded by reasonings like these " Why should not an administration, they say, reward its friends and sup- porters ? What is it, but righting the wrongs done by a previous administration? What is it, in fact, but choosing its friends, rather than its enemies, to help it carry on the government ?" I will grant, that this must be done, in regard to its immediate council its Cabi- net. But when it extends beyond this to subordinate officers, what is it but a system of favoritism and pro- scription, fatal to all public virtue ? Honesty then be- comes a discarded and persecuted virtue ; and mere, blind, unscrupulous party zeal becomes the only pass-, port to honors and emoluments. Honorable citizen- ship is sunk in base partisanship. The entire national dignity, so far as it is connected with its political ac- tion freedom, franchise, patriotism, self-respect all is merged in a vile scramble for office. The national conscience is sold in the market. The national honor is all bowed down to the worship of interest. The corrupted nation sets up a golden calf, in place of the 276 ON POLITICAL MORALITY. Divinity of pristine and holy truth ; and not the Isra- elites, at the footstool of God's manifested presence, were more debased and sacrilegious idolaters. The destruction of mutual confidence and respect, is another evil connected with our party strifes, and to me, it is one of the most painful. Pass through the different party circles of the coun- try, and what shall you hear ? In the course of a sin- gle day, you shall hear every public man in the coun- try, charged with a total want of principle. You shall hear this constantly, from men of the greatest sobriety and weight of character. Not one man in public life, high enough to be a mark for observation, shall escape this tremendous proscription. If you open the news- papers, in the hope, by some patient reading and in- vestigation, to ascertain what the truth is, you find yourself immediately launched upon a sea of doubts. Every fact, every measure, every man, is represented in such different lights, that you are totally at a loss, so far as that testimony goes, what to believe. You are in a worse condition than a juror, vexed by con- trary pleadings. You have no judge to help you, and the whole country is filled with party pleadings, with- out law or precedent, without rule or restraint. You soon come to feel, as if nothing less than the devotion of a whole life, can enable you thoroughly to under- stand the questions that are brought before you : but you have no life to give you have something else to do. There is, indeed, one way to find relief; and it is the common way. It is to believe every thing that one party says, and nothing that another says. But he must altogether abjure his reason, who believes that this is the way to come at the truth. And yet, this is the ON POLITICAL MORALITY. 277 course usually adopted ; and men are reading their fa- vorite journals the year round, not to get their minds en- lightened and their judgments corrected, but only to have their passions inflamed, and their prejudices confirmed. Thus, the grand instrument of public opinion is broken. A sound and virtuous public opinion is the only safeguard of the country, and yet men lay their hands upon it as recklessly, as if it were given them to practice upon, and to pervert and poison at their pleas- ure as if this great surrounding atmosphere of thought, which invests and sustains the people, were but a la- boratory for the experiments of ingenuity and tricks of legerdemain. Thus, I say, confidence is fallen, and with it is fallen mutual respect. What respect can there be between parties, who are constantly accusing one another of fraud and perjury, of the worst practices and the bas- est ends ? What respect between editors of journals, who are daily charging each other with intrigue, ma- lignity and wilful falsehood? Can any honorable mind desire this state of things ? Can nothing be done to in- troduce a new morality, a new courtesy into our dis- cussions ? Must our conflicts always be of this bad and brutal character ? Is it not the inevitable tendency of this fierce and blasting recrimination, to blunt the sense of honor ? Instead of feeling " a stain like a wound," a man is likely to come out of such conflicts seared and scaled all over, as with the mail of leviathan. I confess, that I look with more respect upon the gentle courtesy of the old chivalry, upon the mad sense of honor defended in the tournament, upon the bloody battling of national pride and jealousy, than upon the abusive and outrageous language of our party strifes. 24 278 ON POLITICAL MORALITY. All this, 'too, in a time of peace ! All this for difference of opinion, on grave and difficult questions, upon which men may lawfully and honestly differ ! Opponents for such cause, treating one another like ruffians ! Repu- tation the life, the more than life of a man, stabbed and slain in the shambles of this political butchery ! Tell us not, men of the world ! of our religious dis- putes. Talk not of our odium theologicum. Say no- thing of the contentions of professional men, or of the quarrels of authors. Their sound is scarcely heard now, nor is it likely any more to be audible in this land ; for it is all lost in the loud strife and fierce battle of politics, that is every year and every month, rising and raging around us. And the tendency of all this, in fine, is to debase and brutalize the country. Personal independence beaten down ; mutual confidence and respect prostrated ; mor- al deterioration follows as a natural consequence. I do not forget to limit the observation. I know that political action is not the whole action of the country. I do not say, that the national character is all sunk to the point of its political derelictions : by no means. But this I say, that immorality in politics, so far as it can take effect, tends to debase and brutalize the coun- try. It tends to corrupt the public sentiment, and to degrade private virtue. No man is so pure, but he is vilified without mercy, by the opposite party. No man is so base so vicious and criminal, but he is sus- tained without conscience, by his own. It tends to di- vest the franchise of all dignity, and the government of all venerableness. Let politics be separated from principle, from a high and commanding morality, and instead of the calm majesty of a free people at the ON POLITICAL MORALITY. 279 polls, we shall see the brawls of a vulgar election ; and instead of a magnanimous and self-poised government, a miserable, time-serving, place-keeping faction ! But I must check myself. I ought not, for your pa- tience* sake, to enlarge on this topic, though, alas ! it were too easy to do so. Is it not possible, I have said, to introduce a new morality, a new courtesy into our political disputes? And little as you may imagine that this question is thought of, yet I am persuaded, that there are thousands of lofty minds that ask it, with ea- gerness it may be, with sighing, and almost, with de- spair. But I am persuaded that it is possible. Even if the pulpit would do its duty, I persuade myself, that much would be accomplished. If, leaving barren po- lemics and useless abstractions, it would address itself to this momentous theme of the nation's moral well- being if, among the duties which men owe to men, it would solemnly and emphatically place the duties they owe to their country, it could not be without some ef- fect. Sad and lamentable, that in a countiy like this, the pulpit should be wanting to such a trust ! Yes, it if possible to do something to do every thing. Pos- sible, did I say ? How easy were it ? It is but for every writer and speaker to the country, to charge himself to speak and write with fairness, candor and courtesy ; for every citizen to vote honestly ; for every legislator and ruler, to act as one who has sworn at the altar of truth, in the sight of Heaven. Oh ! come, ho- ly truth, easier than falsehood ! primeval virtue, better than victory ! and that which the sages of the world, the prophets of human hope, looking over the ages, have sighed to behold, shall appear a free and happy community a free, lofty and self-governed people ! 280 DISCOURSE XII. THE BLESSING OF FREEDOM. (Delivered on the Thanksgiving Anniversary in 1837.) JEREMIAH XXX. 21. And their nobles shall be of THEMSELVES, AND THEIR GOVERNORS SHALL PROCEED FROM THE MIDST OF THEM. The subject on which I am about to address you, is the blessing of freedom ; the advantages of that po- litical condition in which we are placed. There are various causes in operation, which tend to lessen in us, the due sense of these advantages. Extravagance of praise asserting too much with re- i to any principle overdrawn statements of its nature, and perpetual boasting of its effects, are likely in all cases, sooner or later, to bring about a reaction. I think we are now witnessing something of this reac- tion. The abuses of the principle of liberty also, the outbreakings of popular violence, mobs and tumults prostrating the law under foot, and the tyranny, more- over, of legal majorities, and withal, the bitter animosi- ties of party strife, and the consequent incessant fluc- tuations of public policy, constantly deranging the bu- siness of the country all these things are leading some to say, but with more haste and rashness than wisdom, THE BLESSING OF FREEDOM. 281 I must think, that even political oppression and injus- tice, which should make all strong and firm and per- manent, would be better than that state of things in which we live. Add to all this, that the blessings which are common, like the air we breathe and the light of day blessings which are invested with the fa- miliar livery of our earliest and most constant experi- ence are apt to pass by us unregarded ; while the evils of life, calamities and concussions of the elements, shipwrecks and storms and earthquakes, rise into por- tentous and heart-thrilling significance ; and we see an- other and final reason why the advantages of our po- litical condition are liable to be undervalued. We have departed just far enough from those days in which the battle for freedom was fought, to substitute indifference and complaint, for the old enthusiasm and devotion. Indeed, it appears to me, that the time has come, not only in this country, but on the theatre of the world's public opinion, when the merits of popular representa- tive government are to be thoroughly examined. In fact, they were never brought into such controversy all over the world, as they are at this moment. Nay, even in this country, strange as it may seem, there is, in some minds at least, such a controversy. But, in England, the question about giving supreme dominion to the public will, is the great, the ultimate and vital question of the day. That question, too, is penetrat- ing into France and Germany ; and it will yet make its way into Italy, and Russia, and the Ottoman Em- pire itself. The first step which I shall take in defending the ground which we as a nation have taken, will be care- fully to define it. What then is the ground which we 24* 282 THE BLESSING OF FREEDOM. have taken ? What is the principle of a democratic or representative government ? It is, that no restraints, disabilities or penalties shall be laid upon any person, and that no immunities, privileges or charters shall be conferred on any person or any class of persons, but such as tend to promote the general welfare. This ex- ception, be it remembered, is an essential part of our theory. Our principle is not, as I conceive, that no privileges shall be granted to one person more than to another. If bank charters, for instance, can be proved to be advantageous to the community, our principle must allow them. It is upon the same principle, that we grant acts of incorporation to the governors of colleges, academies and hospitals, and to many other benevolent and literary societies : it is upon the ground that they benefit the public. And what is government itself, but a corporation possessing and exercising cer- tain exclusive powers for the general weal. The President of the United States is, by our will, the most privileged person in the country ; he holds, for the time being, an absolute monopoly of certain extraor- dinary powers. Will any man say, then, that no per- son shall enjoy any privileges which he does not en- joy ? There may, doubtless, be monopolies and immu- nities which are wrong, unjust and injurious. But when the popular cry is, " down with all monopolies 1 down with all corporations and charters !" I hold, that it is a senseless cry. It is a senseless cry, because it is suicidal ; because it is fatal to all government. Again, I maintain, that our democratic principle is not that the people are always right. It is this rather ; that although the people may sometimes be wrong, yet that they are not so likely to be wrong and to do wrong THE BLESSING OF FREEDOM. 283 as irresponsible, hereditary magistrates and legislators ; that it is safer to trust the many with the keeping of their own interests, than it is to trust the few to keep those interests for them. The people are not always right ; they are often wrong. They must be so, from the very magnitude, difficulty and complication of the questions that are submitted to them. I am amazed, that thinking men, conversant with these questions, should address such gross flattery and monstrous ab- surdity to the people, as to be constantly telling them, that they will put all these questions right at the ballot- box. And I am no less amazed, that a sensible people should suffer such folly to be spoken to them. Is it possible that the people believe it ? Is it possible that the majority itself of any people, can be so infatuated as to hold, that in virtue of its being a majority, it is always right ? Alas ! for truth, if it is to depend on votes ! Has the majority always been right in religion or in philosophy? But the science of politics involves questions no less intricate and difficult. And on these questions, there are grave and solemn decisions to be made by the people ; great State problems are submit- ted to them ; such, for instance, as concerning internal improvements, the tariff, the currency, banking, and the nicest points of construction ; which cost even the wisest men much study ; and what the people require for the solution of these questions, is not rash haste, boastful confidence, furious anger and mad strife, but sobriety, calmness, modesty qualities, indeed, that would go far to abate the violence of our parties, and to hush the brawls of our elections. I do not deny, that questions of deep national concern, may justly awaken great zeal and earnestness ; but I do deny, 284 THE BLESSING OF FREEDOM. that the public mind should be bolstered up with the pride of supposing itself to possess any complete, mucli less, any suddenly acquired knowledge of them. I am willing to take my fellow-citizens for my governors, with all their errors ; I prefer their will, legally signi- fied, to any other government ; but to say or imply, that they do not err and often err, is a doctrine alike preposterous in general theory, and pernicious in its effects upon themselves. A popular government, then, is not to be represented as an unerring government, but only as less likely to err, less likely to oppress and wrong the people, than any other. Errors there are, indeed, and enough of them, to make the people unfeignedly cautious and modest, in the great attempt to govern themselves. The violence and immorality of party strifes, the prostration of all social order beneath the feet of infuriated mobs, the taking of life without the forms of law, murder, in- deed, in the open day, and with more than the impu- nity of ordinary concealment these things fill us at times, with alternate disgust and despair. Let the weight of public reprobation rest upon them. I would not lift one finger of the heavy hand which ought to lie upon them, and which ultimately must lie upon them. But let it not be thought, that strifes and tu- mults are the peculiar results of republican institutions. Will any one say that, during the period of our nation- al existence, we have suffered more from the turbu- lence of the people, than other nations under different forms of government ? Have we forgotten the riots, the burning of hay-ricks and destruction of machinery in England ; the horrors of the successive revolutions THE BLESSING OF FREEDOM. 285 in France ; the tumults and secret societies of Ger- many ; the Ottoman throne swaying to and fro to the pushing pike-staffs of lawless Janizaries ; the atrocities of Russian despotism in Poland ; the gentle tyranny of Austria, not so blood-thirsty no, but only burying ahVe her noblest subjects in the graves of Spielburg and Venice have we forgotten these things, that we are willing to exchange for such fortunes, the peaceful order of these free and happy States ? It is true, indeed, and lamentable as true, that this peaceful order is sometimes broken. It is true and lamentable, that some of our citizens have strangely forgotten the very principle on which our institutions are based freedom freedom of speech, freedom of publication, freedom of trial by jury as the only con- dition on which life, liberty or property in this country shall be ever touched. My blood runs cold in my veins, and I tremble as I look upon my children, to think that my house or yours, may yet be surround- ed by an armed mob, that you or I may be shot down, without remorse, on our own threshold, simply for as- serting our honest opinion. But, I thank God, that this is yet a country, and I trust in God, always will be a country, in which I can express my indignation alike against the despotism of a government, and the despotism of a populace. When it ceases to be such, be it no longer my country ! Give me any tyranny, ra- ther than that most monstrous of all the tyrannies ever heard of the bloody violence of a lawless people, with liberty on their lips and murder in their hearts. Let this body of mine sink under the Turkish bow-string or the Russian knout, rather than be trodden out of life under the heels of a brutal populace. I am not 286 THE BLESSING OF FREEDOM. an abolitionist, in the technical sense of that word, and I say it now, only that I may give my words the great- er force. For if I thought every abolitionist in the country worthy of death, I should still say that the hand which inflicted it, without the forms of law, was the hand of a murderer. And wo and shame to the country, if such deeds can go unpunished ! I have said that I am not an abolitionist, but let it not be supposed, on the other hand, that I am a friend to the system of slavery. With what face could I en- ter upon a defence of the doctrine of liberty, if I were so ? The very despot could defend liberty upon that plan that is, " liberty for me," he would say, " and bondage for you." Slavery is, undoubtedly, an anom- aly in our free institutions. And when I defend and eulogise our freedom, that, of course, must be set aside, as a lamentable, though I trust, that it is to be a tem- porary exception. Let me now proceed to speak of liberty as a bless- ing, and the highest blessing that can appertain to the condition of a people. This, you know, is denied. It is maintained, on the contrary, that liberty is a curse. I do not say that such a proposition is openly main- tained in this country. But in other countries, it is maintained, with a zeal to which we must, at least, al- low the credit of sincerity, that the liberty we contend for, is a curse ; that it is not only a dream of enthusi- asts, but a wild and dangerous dream, which must sooner or later, wake to the fearful realities of disor- der, anarchy and bloodshed. We are called upon, therefore, with equal earnestness to defend the ground, which we as a people, have taken. This defence, I will humbly, in my place, attempt. THE BLESSING OP FREEDOM. 287 And in the first place, I value our political constitu- tion, because it is the only system that accords with the truth of things, the only system that recognises the great claims and inalienable rights of humanity. There may be nations who are not prepared to assert these claims, and to enjoy these rights. I speak not for them. But for me it is a happiness that I live under a politi- cal system, that is not based upon error, that involves no gross and palpable violation of the great and mani- fest rights of humanity. I might feel, in Austria or in Prussia, that I was no sufferer from the political sys- tem under which I lived ; nay, I might be one of the favorites of that system ; but I would not desire to be the favorite of a system, which would be a constant reproach to my reason and my conscience. Why, I must naturally desire that even the machinery of a manufactory, were I engaged in one, should be the best should exhibit the fittest adjustment of part to part ; how much more must I desire this, concerning the machinery of that political constitution, which in- volves not only interests, but rights and duties. There is not, and there cannot be, any true system of political morality, which does not consult the greatest happiness of the greatest number. And no splendor of a nobility, no magnificence of a throne, can atone for the want of that principle. No sentiment of loyalty, however honorable and graceful it may seem, can stand in place of the dignity of justice. And what is that justice the justice of a social sys- tem ? What is the tenor of the law under which all men evidently hold life, and all the blessings of life, from the great Creator? Is it that one man's will shall reign, a despotic sovereign, over the welfare of millions ? Is 288 THE BLESSING OF FREEDOM, it that any one class shall be raised to perpetual honor and power, while all other classes shall be proportion- ably depressed? Is this justice? I am not saying now what temporary expediency may be ; but, I say, is this justice ? How, is it manifestly the will of heav- en, that men, its children, should regard and treat one another ? Must we quote written texts, to prove that the great Being who reigns over all is no respecter of persons ? Must we solemnly appeal to the universal sense of right in the human breast, to show that ac- cording to the will of God, the dispensation of wealth, happiness, honor and all the blessings of existence should come the nearest possible to the measure of dis- tributive justice the nearest possible to being the re- ward of merit ? That it cannot come precisely to this point, is true ; but is that any argument for failing to come the nearest possible to it ? Can any honorable and generous mind willingly consent to live can it live happily, with monstrous social injustice all around it with monstrous social injustice as the very basis of its distinction ; and that injustice capable of a rem- edy ? And is there not injustice in the social, the semi- feudal system of Europe a system of immemorial preferences in church and state, in political employ- ments and social honors ? What is it but to run a race, in which certain hereditary competitors have all the advantage ! Would you send your sons so to run a race even in a May-day game ? But what is this to the race of life, the race for happiness which all men are running ? Would you put out your children to an apprenticeship, or into a school, where certain of their fellows, by no merit of their own, were placed so fai above them, that they could only by gracious permis- THE BLESSING OF FREEDOM. 280 sion, raise their eyes to them ? But what would this be, to the great discipline and school of life ? These are not mere figures* They represent facts* They point to grievous burthens, heavy to be borne. Is it not a burthen to the Dissenter, that all the ecclesiasti- cal revenues of a kingdom, should be garnered up for a privileged church ? Is it not a burthen to the com- moner, that so many of the powers and honors of a state, should be lavished upon a hereditary class ? Is it not a burthen to the laborer or artisan, that so large a portion of the capital of a country, should be for ever sequestrated from their reach, for the ease and aggrandisement of a few ? The capital of a country consists mainly in its soil, its mines, its woods and wa- ters. And, now, to take the most prosperous example of feudal institutions in the world who, I ask, who own almost half of the soil and mines, the woods and waters of England ? Her nobles. And by law, they are permitted to hold them, in perpetual entail, in their own families, for their own advantage, and even free from attachment for debt ! And, in addition to this, by the custom and courtesy, should I not rather say, the discourtesy of society, they are permitted to look down upon the whole surrounding world. I thank heaven, that I live in a country of more equal institutions. I do not pretend here to judge of Eng- lish reforms. Whether they are too rapid or too slow, I am not qualified to decide. But I may, at least, thank heaven, that we do not need them. Perhaps I have a hearer, to whom even these candid allusions to England may not be agreeable. It may not be with- out some degree of irritation, that he will ask, why I should say any thing in disparagement of England ? 25 290 THE BLESSING OF FREEDOM. the most glorious country, he may say, in the world. He may say this, and I shall not refuse to agree with him : but the glory of England is the work of time and position, and of a noble race of men, and not, I trust, of the inequality of her political constitution. Why, then, do I speak as I do, even of the fairest and most modified example of feudal institutions ? I will answer. It is because I stand up for justice, as the dearest im- munity of a civilized state. It is because I stand up for humanity, as the noblest claim in the world. It is because I contend for a dignity, higher than that of kings and nobles the dignity of truth. It is, in fine, because I am willing, and I wish to stand on earth as a man beneath the equal and even canopy of heav- en in presence of the impartial justice and loving- kindness that reign in that heaven there to discharge my lot, and to work out my welfare as a man. It offends me, to think that I or any other man should be bolstered up with hereditary advantages, or with social or religious immunities, that are denied to mine equals, my brethren, in the sight of God. That is my feeling, be it called quixotism, or whatever else any one may call it. I have, in this matter, an unfortunate and strange way of thinking of others, as if they possessed my own nature ; and I cannot patiently bear, that the children of one common Father, should be treated with a partiality that would revolt me, if it were introduced among the children of an earthly parentage. It is mon- strous in the eye of reason ; it is treason to gentle hu- manity ; it is as truly unjust, as if it were the oppres- sion of bonds and burthens ; and the time will come, when it will be so regarded. The dignity of the Eng- lish mind, I am certain, will not always bear it. In THE BLESSING OF FREEDOM. 291 the mean time, I say it again, I thank heaven, that I am made no party, either better or worse, to the in- justice of such a system. II. In the next place, I value our liberty, and deem it a just cause of thankfulness to heaven, because it fosters and developes all the intellectual and moral powers of the country. Freedom is the natural school of energy and enter- prize. Freedom is the appropriate sphere of talent and virtue. The soul was not made to walk in fetters. To act powerfully, it must act freely ; and it must act, too, under all the fair incentives of an honest and hon- orable ambition. This applies, especially, to the mass of the people. There may be minds, and there are, which find a sufficient incentive to exertion, in the love of knowledge and improvement, in the single aim at perfection. But this is not, and cannot be, the con- dition of the mass of minds. They need other im- pulses. Open then, I say, freely and widely to every individual, the way to wealth, to honor, to social respect and to public office, and you put life into any people. Impart that principle to a nation of Turks, or even of Hindoos, and it will be as a resurrection from the dead. The sluggish spirit will be aroused ; the languid nerve will be strung to new energy ; there will be a stir of action and a spring to industry all over the country, because there will be a motive. Alas ! how many poor toilers in the world are obliged to labor, without reward, without hope, almost without motive ! Like the machinery amidst which they labor, and of which they are scarcely more than a part, they are moved by the impulse of blind necessity. The single hope of bettering their condition, which now, alas ! 292 THE BLESSING OF FREEDOM. never visits them, would regenerate them to a new- life. Now, it is with such life, that this whole nation is inspired. It is freedom that has breathed the breath of life into this people. I know that there are perils attending this intense action and competition of society. But I see, nevertheless, a principle that is carrying for- ward this country with a progress, altogether unprece- dented in the history of the world. Invention, internal improvement, and accumulation among us, are taking strides before unheard of. More school-houses, col- leges and churches have been builded, in this country, within the last twenty years ; more canals and rail- roads have been constructed ; more fortunes have been acquired, and, what is better, more poor men have risen to competence ; and, in fine, more enterprizes and works of social and religious beneficence have been achieved, than ever were done, take them all together, in an equal time, by an equal population, under heaven. For these things, 1 love and honour my country. For these things, I am thankful to heaven, that my lot is cast in it. And this I say, not in the spirit of boasting, but because I think the time has come when it needs to be said ; because I believe that many of us are in- sensible to our advantages ; because the eyes of the world are fixed upon us for inquisition and for reproach, and incessant foreign criticism is liable to cool the fer- vor of our patriotism. Nay, I will go further, and confess the secret hope I have long entertained, that the liberty wherewith, as I believe, God has made us free, that the equal justice, the impartial rewards which encourage individual en- terprize in this country, will produce yet more glorious THE BLESSING OF FREEDOM. 293 and signal results ; results that will proclaim to all the world, that political equity is the best pledge for na- tional dignity, strength and honor; results which will, effectually and for ever break down the pernicious maxim, that a certain measure of political injustice and favoritism, is necessary to the order and security of the social state. As I believe in a righteous Providence, I do not believe in this maxim ; and I trust in God, that it will receive its final and annihilating blow in this very country. It is not that I challange for our people any natural superiority to other people. It is not to the shrine of national pride that I bring the homage of this lofty hope, but to the footstool of divine goodness. It is to our signal advantages, and especially to the equal justice of our institutions, that I look for the ac- complishment of this great hope. I believe that freedom free action free enterprize free competi- tion will be found to be the best of auspices for every kind of human success. I believe that our citi- zens will be found to act more effectively, and more generously, and more nobly, for being free ; that our citizen soldiers will, if called upon, fight more valiantly for being free ; that our laborers will toil more cheer- fully for being free ; that our merchants will trade more successfully ; nay, and little as it may be expected, that our preachers and orators will discourse more elo- quently, and that our authors will write more power- fully, for the spirit of freedom that is among us. The future, indeed, must tell us whether this is a dream of enthusiastic patriotism. But I would fain have the most generous of principles for once laid at the heart of a great people, and see what it will do. Alas ! for humanity never yet has it been treated with the con* 25* 294 THE BLESSING OF FREEDOM. fidence of simple justice. Never yet has any voice effectually said to man, 4< God has made thee to be as happy and as glorious if thou wilt, as thy most envied fellow." When that voice does address the heart of the multitude, will it not arouse itself to loftier efforts, to nobler sacrifices, to higher aspirations, and more generous virtues, than were ever seen to be the off- spring of any unequal and ungenerous system that ever man has devised ? God grant that the hope may be realized, and the vision accomplished ! It were enough to make one say, "now let me depart in peace, for mine eyes have seen thy salvation !" III. In the third place, I value political liberty, be- cause, of that which a free and unfettered energy obtains, it gives the freest and amplest use. What is the effect, nay, what is the design of a des- potic government, but to deprive the people of the largest amount that it can, or dare, of the proceeds of their honest industry and laudable enterprize ? Under its grossest forms, it levies direct contributions ; in its more plausible administration, it levies taxes ; but in either case, its end is the same to feed and batten a few, at the expense of the many. In order the more effectually to accomplish this purpose, such govern- ments require standing armies, or to speak more ex- actly, a military force to act at home. That is to say, a part of the citizens, one of each family, perhaps, must be armed and trained, in order to coerce and control the labor, the toil, the entire labor of the rest. Such then, more or less strongly marked, is the con- dition of labor in every part of the world, with the ex- ception of our own favored country. The people must work till they are weary, for the supply of their THE BLESSING OP FREEDOM. 295 own wants. So far the law of labor is healthful, and every way useful. But after that, they must work a while longer one or two hours every day to support a home military force. And then, when the yoke is fairly fixed upon their necks, they must work as much longer as their masters please, to gorge the almost in- satiable appetite of a luxurious court, and a herd of idle courtiers and sycophants beside. And the reward they get, is two-fold ; perpetual poverty, and an utter contempt of their grovelling employments. Let me not be told, that differences in the form of government are mere matters of speculation ; that they have very little to do with our private welfare ; that a man may be as happy under one form as another. I think it was on occasion of our Revolution, that Dr. Johnson put forth some such oracle as this. But it is not true. It may pass for good nature, or for smooth philosophy, if any one pleases so to call it, but it is not true. What more obvious interest of human life is there, than that a man's labor shall produce for him, the greatest possible amount of comfort ; that he should enjoy, as far as is compatible with the sup- port of civil order, the proceeds of his toil ! Labor, honorable and useful as it is, is not so very agreeable, that a man should recklessly give it for that which is not bread. And that, he emphatically does, who gives it for pensions, sinecures and monopolies, and estab- lishments and wars, which benefit him- not at all. What real interest have the people had in four-fifths of the wars that have devastated Europe, and burthen- ed all her governments with enormous debts ? It is strange, indeed, when the laboring hand is so near the suffering heart, that men do not feel this. But the rea^ 296 THE BLESSING OF FREEDOM. son is, that the exactions of selfish and unjust govern- ments come upon them in the indirect form of taxa- tion of impost and revenue, and excise, and the hun- dred minor and contemptible contrivances that have been invented, to hide from them the fact. Let them be told, let them see, that of their ten hour's toil each day, four or five hours only are for themselves or their families, while the remainder are for other families and other children than their own, and they would think it in- tolerable. But this, more or less, always is, and always must be, the condition of the people, where govern- ments do not represent its expressed and supreme will. For it is not in human nature, lawfully and justly to use unlawful and unlimited power. I only wish to know that governments have the power to oppress the people, to know that they use it. And the very defi- nition of such a power is a power not emanating from themselves. Tell your neighbor, ay, or your friend, that he may govern you, not as much as you please, but just as much as he pleases, and you know very well what the consequence will be. You would not trust your dearest friend, nor scarcely an angel in heav- en, to have such a power over you. I thank heaven^ that there is no such power, and nothing approaching to it, in this country 7 . And in order to make out a clear case of superior advantages, on our part, it is not necessary that I should go into details, (for which, in- deed, I have not space ;) it is not necessary, that I should now particularize and say, that this government possesses such a power, and that government a certain other power, which bear hard upon the people ; for every government not emanating from them, is sure to present a case of such hardship. But one fact, I will THE BLESSING OF FREEDOM. 297 mention in this connection, which may stand in place of all other facts, and that is, the eternal enmity which exists in every other country between the government and the people. That enmity, as old as the creation, has never been brought so completely to an end as here. I know that we hear sometimes of measures of an administration, as having an unfriendly bearing up- on particular interests ; but it is certain, that the gov- ernment with us, can never stand up in permanent hostility to that people, of which it is the creature. But when we turn our eyes abroad, what do we see ? Every where the people are demanding constitutions, charters, immunities, changes, which their respective governments will not concede to them. So far as the satisfaction of a people with its institutions is concern- ed, we are, after all that is said about popular disturb- ances among us, in a state of singular, of enviable, I may say, of profound tranquillity. And well do I know, if I know the spirit of this people, that that tranquillity would be effectually disturbed, were a tithe of the re- sistance and refusal to which every other nation must submit, to lay its intolerable grievance on us. The very cup of blessings with us, would be a cup of wrath and indignation. I have offered some reasons to show that our free- dom is a blessing. It is founded in rectitude as a prin- ciple ; it fosters the intellectual and moral growth of a country ; and it favors the amplest enjoyment of all the blessings of existence. These are reasons. But I should not exhaust the subject, even in this most gen- eral view of it, if I did not add one further considera- tion in behalf of freedom ; a consideration that is high- er and stronger than any reason ; I mean the intrinsic 298 THE BLESSING OP FREEDOM. desirableness of this condition to eveiy human being. In this respect, freedom is like virtue, like happiness ; we value it for its own sake. God has stamped upon our very humanity this impress of freedom. It is the unchartered prerogative of human nature. A soul ceases to be a soul, in proportion as it ceases to be free. Strip it of this, and you strip it of one of its essential and characteristic attributes. It is this that draws the footsteps of the wild Indian to his wide and boundless desert-paths, and makes him prefer them to the gay saloons and soft carpets of sumptuous palaces. It is this that makes it so difficult to bring him within the pale of artificial civilization. Our roving tribes are perishing a sad and solemn sacrifice upon the altar of their wild freedom. They come among us, and look with childish wonder upon the perfection of our arts, and the splendor of our habitations ; they submit with ennui and weariness, for a few days, to our burthen- some forms and restraints ; and then turn their faces to their forest homes, and resolve to push those homes onward till they sink in the Pacific waves, rather than not be free. It is thus that every people is attached to its coun- try, just in proportion as it is free. No matter if that country be in the rocky fastnesses of Switzerland, amidst the snows of Tartary, or on the most barren and lonely Island-shore ; no matter if that country be so poor, as to force away its children to other and richer lands, for employment and sustenance ; yet when the songs of those free homes chance to fall upon the ex- ile's ear, no soft and ravishing airs that wait upon the timed feastings of Asiatic opulence, ever thrilled the heart with such mingled rapture and agony, as those THE BLESSING OF FREEDOM. 299 simple tones. Sad mementoes might they be of pov- erty and want and toil ; yet it was enough that they were mementoes of happy freedom. And more than once has it been necessary to forbid by military orders, in the armies of the Swiss mercenaries, the singing of their native songs. And such an attachment, do I believe, is found in our own people, to their native country. It is the country of the free ; and that single consideration com- pensates for the want of many advantages, which other countries possess over us. And glad am I, that it opens wide its hospitable gates, to many a noble but persecuted citizen, from the dungeons of Austria and Italy, and the imprisoning castles and citadels of Po- land. Here may they find rest, as they surely find sympathy, though it is saddened with many bitter re- membrances ! Yes, let me be free ; let me go and come at my own will ; let me do business and make journies, without a vexatious police or insolent soldiery, to watch my steps ; let me think, and do, and speak, what I please, subject to no limit but that which is set by the common weal ; subject to no law but that which conscience binds up- on me ; and I will bless my country, and love its most rugged rocks and its most barren soil. I have seen my countrymen, and have been with them a fellow- wanderer, in other lands ; and little did I see or feel to warrant the apprehension, sometimes expressed, that foreign travel would weaken our pa- triotic attachments. One sigh for home home, arose from all hearts. And why, from palaces and courts why, from galleries of the arts, where the marble sof- tens into life, and painting sheds an almost living pres- 300 THE BLESSING OP FREEDOM. ence of beauty around it why, from the mountain's awful brow, and the lovely valleys and lakes touched with the sunset hues of old romance why, from those venerable and touching ruins to which our very heart grows why, from all these scenes, were they looking beyond the swellings of the Atlantic wave, to a dear- er and holier spot of earth their own, own country? Doubtless, it was in part, because it is their country. But it was also, as everyone's experience will testify, be- cause they knew that there was no oppression, no pitiful exaction of petty tyranny ; because that there, they knew, was no accredited and irresistible religious dom- ination ; because that there, they knew, they should not meet the odious soldier at every corner, nor swarms of imploring beggars, the victims of misrule ; that there, no curse causeless did fall, and no blight, worse than plague and pestilence, did descend amidst the pure dews of heaven ; because, in fine, that there, they knew, was liberty upon all the green hills, and amidst all the peaceful valleys liberty, the wall of fire around the humblest home ; the crown of glory, studded with her ever-blazing stars, upon the proudest mansion ! My friends, upon our own homes, that blessing rests, that guardian care and glorious crown ; and when we return to those homes, and so long as we dwell in them so long as no oppressor's foot invades their thresh- olds, let us bless them, and hallow them as the homes of freedom ! Let us make them, too, the homes of a nobler freedom of freedom from vice, from evil, from passion from every corrupting bondage of the soul. RETURN TO the circulation desk of any University of California Library or to the NORTHERN REGIONAL LIBRARY FACILITY Bldg. 400, Richmond Field Station University of California Richmond, CA 94804-4698 ALL BOOKS MAY BE RECALLED AFTER 7 DAYS 2-month loans may be renewed by calling (415)642-6233 1-year loans may be recharged by bringing books to NRLF Renewals and recharges may be made 4 days prior to due date DUE AS STAMPED BELOW <\PR9 1990 JUN291992 YB 700*